White Tears - Hari KunzruHari Kunzru / text
P. 1
White Tears - Hari Kunzru
Hari Kunzru/Texts/Books/Author/White Tears - Hari Kunzru.pdf
White Tears - Hari KunzruHari Kunzru / text
P. 2
ALSO BY HARI KUNZRU
The Impressionist
Transmission
My Revolutions
Gods Without Men
White Tears - Hari KunzruHari Kunzru / text
P. 3
White Tears - Hari KunzruHari Kunzru / text
P. 4
THIS IS A BORZOI BOOK PUBLISHED BY ALFRED A. KNOPF
Copyright © 2017 by Hari Kunzru
All rights reserved. Published in the United States by Alfred A. Knopf, a division of
Penguin Random House LLC, New York, and distributed in Canada by Random
House of Canada, a division of Penguin Random House Canada Limited, Toronto.
www.aaknopf.com
Knopf, Borzoi Books, and the colophon are registered trademarks of Penguin
Random House LLC.
Library of Congress Cataloging-in-Publication Data
Names: Kunzru, Hari, [date] author.
Title: White tears / Hari Kunzru.
Description: First edition. | New York : Alfred A. Knopf, 2017. | “This is a Borzoi
book.”
Identifiers: LCCN 2016011904 (print) | LCCN 2016018518 (ebook) |
ISBN 9780451493699 (hardcover) | ISBN 9780451493705 (ebook)
Subjects: LCSH: Sound recording executives and producers—Fiction. |
Murder—Investigation—Fiction. | GSAFD: Mystery fiction.
Classification: LCC PR6111.U68 W48 2017 (print) | LCC PR6111.U68 (ebook) |
DDC 823/.92—dc23
LC record available at https://lccn.loc.gov/2016011904
Ebook ISBN 9780451493705
This is a work of fiction. Names, characters, places, and incidents either are the
product of the author’s imagination or are used fictitiously. Any resemblance to
actual persons, living or dead, events, or locales is entirely coincidental.
Cover design by Peter Mendelsund
v4.1_r1
ep
White Tears - Hari KunzruHari Kunzru / text
P. 5
Contents
Cover
Also by Hari Kunzru
Title Page
Copyright
Dedication
Epigraph
Chapter 1
Chapter 2
Chapter 3
Chapter 4
Chapter 5
Chapter 6
Chapter 7
Chapter 8
Chapter 9
Chapter 10
Chapter 11
Chapter 12
Chapter 13
Chapter 14
Chapter 15
Chapter 16
Chapter 17
Chapter 18
Chapter 19
White Tears - Hari KunzruHari Kunzru / text
P. 6
Chapter 20
Chapter 21
Chapter 22
Chapter 23
Chapter 24
Chapter 25
Chapter 26
Chapter 27
Chapter 28
Chapter 29
Chapter 30
Chapter 31
Chapter 32
Chapter 33
Chapter 34
Chapter 35
Chapter 36
Chapter 37
Chapter 38
Chapter 39
Chapter 40
Chapter 41
Chapter 42
Chapter 43
Chapter 44
Chapter 45
Chapter 46
Chapter 47
Chapter 48
White Tears - Hari KunzruHari Kunzru / text
P. 7
Chapter 49
Chapter 50
Chapter 51
Chapter 52
Chapter 53
Chapter 54
Chapter 55
Chapter 56
Acknowledgments
A Note About the Author
Reading Group Guide
Research from Writing White Tears: Slipping into Darkness
White Tears - Hari KunzruHari Kunzru / text
P. 8
For Katie
White Tears - Hari KunzruHari Kunzru / text
P. 9
I rolled and I tumbled
Cried the whole night long
Woke up this morning
I didn’t know right from wrong
White Tears - Hari KunzruHari Kunzru / text
P. 10
THAT SUMMER I WOULD RIDE MY BIKE over the bridge, lock it up in
front of one of the bars on Orchard Street and drift through the city
on foot, recording. People and places. Sidewalk smokers, lovers’
quarrels, drug deals. I wanted to store the world and play it back just
as I’d found it, without change or addition. I collected audio of
thunderstorms, music coming out of cars, the subway trains
rumbling underfoot; it was all reality, a quality I had lately begun to
crave, as if I were deficient in some necessary vitamin or mineral. I
had a binaural setup, two little mics in my ears that looked like
headphones, a portable recorder clipped to my belt under my shirt. It
was discreet. No one ever noticed. I could roam where I liked and
then ride home and listen back through Carter’s thousand-dollar
headphones at the studio. There were always phenomena I hadn’t
registered, pockets of sound I’d moved through without knowing.
Every sound wave has a physiological effect, every vibration. I once
heard a field recording of a woman singing, sitting on a porch. You
could hear her foot tapping, keeping time. You could hear the creak
of her rocking chair, the crickets in the trees. You could tell it was
evening because of the crickets. I felt I was slipping, that if I wasn’t
careful I’d lose my grip on the present and find myself back there,
seventy or eighty years in the past. The rough board floor, the
overhang of the roof, her voice traveling through the moist heavy air
to the diaphragm of the microphone, its sound converted into
electrical energy, frozen, then the whole process reversed, electricity
moving a speaker cone, sound spilling into my ears and connecting
me to that long-ago time and place. I could feel it flow, that voice,
White Tears - Hari KunzruHari Kunzru / text
P. 11
inhabiting the cavities of my body, displacing the present like water
filling a cistern.
I heard Charlie Shaw on one of those recording walks. It was
evening. I don’t remember why I’d gone out. Perhaps I couldn’t sleep
—that happened. Perhaps I just needed to be outside or spend some
time on my own. I often felt claustrophobic after long sessions; we
could spend twelve hours in the studio without coming up for air. It
was hot, the stifling New York heat that empties the city on July and
August weekends. My shirt was clinging to my back. Passers-by were
sheened in sweat, everyone desperate for the weather to break. I was
recording by the chess tables in Washington Square. A guy called PJ,
evidently the home favorite, was playing another man whose name I
didn’t catch. They’d drawn a little crowd. There was money on the
table. A bottle was being passed around.
PJ was one of the hustlers who sit at those tables day in day out,
playing all-comers for ten bucks a time. He was a flabby white man
in his fifties or sixties with thick glasses and several plastic bags of
nameless crap stashed under the bench. The other player was skinny
and black, hard to say how old because his face was hidden under a
baseball cap. He wore a clean white undershirt and baggy blue jeans.
His bare arms were painfully thin, like two twists of fuse wire. This
man was taking his time over his moves, enough for some of the
onlookers to be muttering and telling him to make up his mind. He
ignored them. Unlike PJ, who was chatting to his buddies, he kept
his head down and seemed absorbed in the game. He was a good
player and soon he forced PJ to give up a knight, then his queen.
There goes my rent money, said PJ to anyone who’d listen. He was
stuck on the phrase, repeating it until it became a tic. Each bad
move: there goes my rent money, there it goes. Something about the
stranger was making the spectators nervous too. He would reach
over the table, settle his long fingers on a piece, move it, then
suddenly bring his palm slapping down on the clock. Each time he
did it, an audible flinch traveled through the crowd. Coughing, keys
fondled in pockets. He was killing PJ, showing no mercy. They didn’t
like it.
White Tears - Hari KunzruHari Kunzru / text
P. 12
Mate in two, said the thin man, almost under his breath. Around
the board, people fell silent. PJ nodded glumly and knocked down
his king with a forefinger. Shoot, he said, now what am I going to do?
As his friends gathered around to commiserate, the stranger counted
his winnings, a wad of small bills. I was already turning away when I
heard him sing. It was a blues, just a line. Believe I buy a graveyard
of my own, he sang. Then he ran it again.
Believe I buy me a graveyard of my own
On the audio, I can hear the change in the position of my head, the
mics over each ear picking up a slightly different range as I swing
round to listen. I don’t know how to explain what happens next. My
memory is clear. There was a skater, a girl. You can hear the rumble
of a deck, but it’s in the background. I distinctly remember turning to
watch her. I saw long black hair, tattooed sleeves, a nice ass in
cutoffs, weaving between dog walkers. How would I know that if I
hadn’t turned? But the audio shows I didn’t. The singer remains in
the same spot. I remember that when I turned back, the game had
broken up. It felt strange. It had only taken a few seconds for the girl
to pass, but already the players and spectators were gone, the tables
completely deserted. At the time, I didn’t think too much about it. I
was hungry, so I walked over to Sixth Avenue to get a slice.
White Tears - Hari KunzruHari Kunzru / text
P. 13
WE WERE ON THE VERGE OF BEING FAMOUS. Bands wanted the sound
we could make. We were booked months into the future and I, for
one, could not have been more surprised. One day I woke up and
there I was, twenty-five years old, in New York City, and cool. I’d
never been cool before, not at high school, not at the liberal arts
college upstate where Carter and I met. He was cool. Blond
dreadlocks, intricate tattoos, a trust fund he didn’t hesitate to use to
further the cause of maximum good times. He had the best collection
of vinyl records, the best drugs. He’d traveled, and not just to hightone places with his parents. He’d hiked in Nepal, driven a bus along
the Skeleton Coast in Namibia looking for surf. I was a suburban kid,
out of my depth even on our little campus in the middle of nowhere,
with its toytown Main Street, its atmosphere of sheltered rehearsal
for the real world.
My family didn’t call it by a medical name, but in my teens I had
some kind of break or event. After my mom died, my dad and I
discovered we had nothing to say to each other. He taught high
school physics and was preoccupied with the problems of my kid
brother, who was rebelling in a conventional cry-for-help way,
smoking weed and shoplifting. It was easier for him not to notice
that I was sliding too. So what if I didn’t want to talk to him? One
less person taking up his time. I was allowed to get on with it,
whatever it was. Losing my mind. For six months, I didn’t go to
school, didn’t even go outside. I only left my room on late-night
missions to kitchen and bathroom, scuttling back and forth like a
cockroach.
White Tears - Hari KunzruHari Kunzru / text
P. 14
At the time it suited me. Four walls. I used to lie on the carpet with
my laptop and a keyboard and a battered old mic, making loops of
my breathing, of the sound of the floorboards creaking as my dad
and my brother walked around outside the door. I’d record these
small noises and fool around with them—making phases, pitching
them up and down. I was trying to hear something in particular, a
phenomenon I was sure existed: a hidden sound that lay underneath
the everyday sounds I could hear without trying. Sure enough, after
months of obsessive listening, a sound did make its presence known,
but it wasn’t the one I’d hoped for. No pure high Buddha tone, no
aural white light. I began to hear the past, the ambience of the room
as it had been ten years previously, then twenty years, then fifty. The
footsteps in the hall didn’t belong to my dad or my brother. They
belonged to someone else.
Getting back from that took me a while.
By the time I went to college I was no more than averagely
introverted, but I was still a weird kid, no doubt. It took Carter
Wallace to pull me out of my cockroach hole. Everyone wanted to be
his friend and no one much wanted to be mine, which was why I was
alone one day on the lawn in front of the band shell, holding a
directional mic mounted in a homemade parabolic reflector, a
configuration that was allowing me to listen, with impressive clarity,
to conversations taking place all the way at the other end of the lawn
by the library. I was eavesdropping on a picnic, a bunch of drama
students updating each other on the gossip, shrieking with attentionseeking laughter every thirty to forty-five seconds, loud enough to
cause clipping. Clearly what I was doing was objectively creepy. I
didn’t much care. Fuck humanity, was my basic position at that
point. The conversation was banal: my work your ex incredibly
moving hooked up needs to check his privilege blah blah blah. For
my purposes, the content was irrelevant. It was just a sound source,
so I could test the equipment. It might as well have been birdsong. I
was really happy that the reflector—which I’d made myself out of an
old satellite dish—was working so well. I lowered the gain and the
meter stopped peaking when the people laughed. Just then, I felt a
White Tears - Hari KunzruHari Kunzru / text
P. 15
touch on my shoulder and found Carter standing behind me with a
stoned half-smile on his face.
I knew who he was, of course. Blond beard plaited into a sort of
fashionable rope, no shirt and a tattoo of Mexican calaveras on his
chest. I assumed, with a sinking feeling, that this hipster Jesus was
something to do with the trendy crowd of picnickers and was about
to kick my ass for spying on his girlfriend, something of that kind.
Instead he asked me about the reflector and seemed to understand at
least some of the technical language I used in my explanation. I
found myself giving him the headphones so he could listen. He told
me the reflector was “sick,” and though this was hardly an incisive
remark, it made me feel as if I’d won an award. Then, to my frank
astonishment, he suggested we go back to his dorm room and listen
to music.
At that time I had strict rules about the kind of music I would
listen to. I wanted to avoid slippage. Old songs made me feel
nervous. Also old recordings. I wanted to be one hundred percent
forward-facing, moving into tomorrow at top speed. I’d grown up
listening to a lot of seventies progressive rock, songs about space
travel and chivalry with frequent changes of time-signature and
bombastic effects. As a teenager it had seemed superior to me,
evidence of my intelligence. I had begun to listen to sixties psych and
garage, inching backwards through the years, but at a certain point,
I’d decided there were certain echoes I couldn’t afford to hear, so I
made a run for it, away from human history and its dark places, into
techno, the aural city on the hill. Here was a shiny sound-world made
of pure electronic tones, in which I could float free of all context,
cocooned in the reassurance that yesterday was long gone, or
perhaps never existed at all.
When I went to Carter’s room that afternoon, I hadn’t voluntarily
listened to the sound of a guitar for three years, but I was so in awe of
him that I broke my rules. We sat on his bed and he played me
records. Vinyl records, old and expensive, lovingly dusted with an
antistatic cloth and placed on a deck positioned on a paving slab to
isolate it from vibration. His setup was impressive. All his decisions
White Tears - Hari KunzruHari Kunzru / text
P. 16
had been technically sound and the equipment was peerless. The
turntable was connected to twin valve amplifiers, fifty years old or
more, engineered to specifications that would be considered
excessive today. They in turn were connected to a pair of British
studio monitors that, he boasted, had once hung in the control room
at Abbey Road. Until then I had held a low opinion of the audiophile
fetish for analog equipment. I considered it sentimental. Carter
completely changed my mind.
At first I was solely preoccupied with audio quality. I appreciated
the range and dynamics of the reproduction, without paying much
attention to Carter’s music taste. Gradually I noticed that everything
he played was by black musicians. Many different styles, but always
black music, most of it completely unfamiliar to me. I began to listen
with increasing pleasure. Carter didn’t so much play me his record
collection as narrate it. He began with Jamaican dub. From there, he
introduced ska and soca, soul and RnB, seventies Afrobeat and
eighties electro. He spun early hip hop and Free Jazz and countless
regional flavors of Bass and Juke music. Chicago, London, Lagos,
Miami. I had not known there was such music.
Over the next weeks and months, Carter taught me to worship—it’s
not too strong a word—what he worshipped. He listened exclusively
to black music because, he said, it was more intense and authentic
than anything made by white people. He spoke as if “white people”
were the name of an army or a gang, some organization to which he
didn’t belong. I paid no mind to his garbled explanation of the source
of this black intensity. The sound was good, and I’d noticed
something extraordinary that was occupying most of my attention. I
was listening to songs that had been recorded twenty years before I
was born, and they had no ill-effect on me. There was no backwards
pull, no sensation of vertigo. I forgot what it was I’d been scared of. I
let it all go. I could not remember the last time I had felt so happy
and carefree.
In between marathon listening sessions, Carter initiated me into
the campus party scene, which I’d previously found opaque and
threatening. As a DJ, he had quasi-celebrity status, arriving in rooms
White Tears - Hari KunzruHari Kunzru / text
P. 17
through a thicket of daps and hugs and fist bumps. Soon I was
helping him out, setting up, troubleshooting the sound system. I’d
hang back behind the decks as he spun his vinyl-only set, watching
girls making fuck-me eyes at him and their jealous boyfriends
pretending they didn’t care. There was such a need to connect with
him, to receive the blessing of his attention. None of the cool kids
could work out why I was the one to carry the conquering hero’s
record box. I was a loser, who dressed (as I was once told) like a
“homeless computer scientist.” They didn’t understand Carter’s
obsessive commitment to music. He didn’t really care about anything
else. I understood that and they didn’t. That was why it was me and
not them.
Carter rarely talked about his family. What I knew, I had to piece
together from campus gossip and the internet. He had an older
brother and sister and it was easy enough to search his dad, a big
Republican donor who appeared in news photographs with senators
and members of the Bush clan. Perhaps not coincidentally, the
Wallace family company, a behemoth with tentacles in construction,
logistics and energy, had expanded since 9/11, helping America
prevail in the War on Terror. Toilet blocks in Afghanistan. Airstrips
and PX’s. Known these days as the Wallace Magnolia Group, they
supplied earthmoving equipment, built freeways, laid pipelines.
Carter’s dead aunt’s name was on a new lecture theater, which, given
his near-total lack of interest in academic work, may have been the
price of his admission to our not-quite-Ivy school. Carter knew what
the Occupy crowd said about him, the no-blood-for-oil crowd. He
told people he’d been disinherited, but that wasn’t strictly true.
Together we went on record-buying trips to Cleveland and Detroit.
He had a 1967 Ford Galaxie, Candy Apple red, which handled like a
boat and drew him into conversations with admiring gas station
attendants and diner patrons. We drove that ridiculous car round a
circuit of thrift stores and basement record dealers, looking for
sixties soul on local labels like Fortune and Hot Wax, techno twelves
on Metroplex and Transmat and every other style in between. We
took chances on weird private press releases that usually turned out
White Tears - Hari KunzruHari Kunzru / text
P. 18
to be lounge singers cranking out Sinatra covers or school bands
doing shaky versions of seventies bubblegum hits. We found gems (a
cache of mint BYG/Actuel free jazz albums still in their shrink wrap,
a blue copy of the UR “Z Record”) and dropped money on turkeys,
bad records with one good track, rare records that turned out to have
no good tracks at all.
White Tears - Hari KunzruHari Kunzru / text
P. 19
MORE THAN A MONTH WENT BY before I finally played back the
recording of the chess players in Washington Square. We had an old
Roland Space Echo that sounded beautiful while it was working, but
kept cutting out. It was a simple problem, a loose connection in the
power supply. I wasn’t going to trust it to the clowns at the repair
place. We (I had fallen into saying “we”) had rented a loft in
Greenpoint, in a building that had once been a Catholic church. We
watched TV in a room whose floor was spangled rainbow colors by
old stained glass. I sat up on the roof with my soldering iron, wearing
headphones and shades, the heat reflecting off the cladding, baking
my shirtless back red as I retraced the meandering path I’d walked
that evening, up Orchard and into Chinatown. I heard Cantopop
songs and electronic jingles, fading in and out as I turned off Canal
and crossed that little park behind the court buildings where all the
old Chinese people go to gamble. Dominoes slapping down on tables,
buskers sawing and plucking at stringed instruments with plaintive
tunings. Back across Canal. Traffic noise and a cop shouting at
someone. On Mott I had passed two women having an argument. At
the time I couldn’t hear what it was about. Now I could. One was
accusing the other of taking something from her purse; coupons, it
sounded like. She’d stolen coupons her friend was saving to get
groceries. One-fiddy on Huggies, shouted the victim. And a dollar off
motherfucking Cheerios. They were drowned out by a fire engine, ten
seconds of distortion that took me into the echo of an empty loading
bay, a guy talking Spanish on his cellphone, then silence, more traffic
noise as I crossed Broadway, someone’s comedy ringtone and one
side of a conversation. Dude, she said she would so she gotta. You tell
White Tears - Hari KunzruHari Kunzru / text
P. 20
her. Washington Square had been full because of the heat. By the
fountain there were breakdancers drumming up a crowd, yelling,
applauding themselves, doing backflips to “Billie Jean.” Under the
arch a young busker was ineptly singing Dylan. Then the chess game,
the crowd grumbling as PJ lost to the stranger. I stopped soldering, a
sudden nervousness in the pit of my stomach. When the voice came,
I couldn’t believe it. I couldn’t understand how I hadn’t heard it the
first time, when the singer was in front of me.
Believe I buy a graveyard of my own
It was a pure voice, quite high, with a rasp when driven, as the
singer did on “buy,” a word he made into three tones, the middle one
spiking into a piercing falsetto buzz.
Believe I bu—u—uy me a graveyard of my own
Put my enemies all down in the ground
Surely, in the presence of such a voice, I’d have paid attention. It
would have been impossible to do anything else. But I had a clear
memory of a girl skater. Sure enough there came the rumble of
skateboard wheels, but no shift in orientation. I hadn’t turned to
watch her. How could I remember what she looked like if I hadn’t
turned round? The singer was still in front of me. After the first two
lines his words were slightly muffled, as if something that absorbed
sound had moved between us. What it was I couldn’t tell. But he kept
on singing. How was that possible? My memory was clear. Two lines
only. Maybe one line. I had been facing in the opposite direction for a
few seconds. When I turned back, the tables were empty and the
players gone. But this audio recording captured an entire
performance, lasting several minutes. Phrases of the lyric jumped
out, less muddy than the others. Put me under a man called Captain
Jack. Something something down my back. And a third verse, went
to the captain something something, something have mercy on
something. It went on. Several verses.
White Tears - Hari KunzruHari Kunzru / text
P. 21
That evening, I played it for Carter. He listened casually at first,
but soon adopted a prayerful posture, hunched forward, his hands
cupped over the headphones as if to press the voice further into his
head.
—This, he said when it was finished. You actually heard this.
—Some guy who just won a chess game over at the tables in
Washington Square. I swear I thought he only sang a few words.
—Jesus, man.
We listened to it again. And a third time, and a fourth. The voice
was mesmerizing. We stayed up until six in the morning, cleaning up
the recording and deciphering the words. At a certain point, this
stops being an aural task and becomes a visual one. You abstract the
sound into shapes, start selecting, magnifying. Then it’s just a matter
of smoothing curves, taking slices out, pasting other slices in. I edited
out the skater. I filtered the background noise, brought up the vocal
until we had a clear a cappella. Carter was enchanted. “It’s beautiful,”
he kept saying. “Incredible.” He was right, but all the same as I
worked I had an instinct to cover my ears, to unhear what I was
hearing. Several times, I let my finger hover over the delete button,
willing myself to press it.
Believe I buy a graveyard of my own
Believe I buy me a graveyard of my own
Put my enemies all down in the ground
Put me under a man they call Captain Jack
Put me under a man they call Captain Jack
Wrote his name all down my back
Went to the Captain with my hat in my hand
Went to the Captain with my hat in my hand
Said Captain have mercy on a long time man
Well he look at me and he spit on the ground
White Tears - Hari KunzruHari Kunzru / text
P. 22
He look at me and he spit on the ground
Says I’ll have mercy when I drive you down
Don’t get mad at me woman if I kicks in my sleep
Don’t get mad at me woman if I kicks in my sleep
I may dream things cause your heart to weep
We played it one more time, then, in our very different moods, we
powered down the equipment and went to bed.
White Tears - Hari KunzruHari Kunzru / text
P. 23
MOST GUYS LIKE US would have formed a band, but Carter was
always more interested in the studio. He wasn’t a poseur or a showoff; people who say that never knew him. In the weeks after we met
at college, I taught him how to use my equipment and we made some
breakbeats together. He loved it and immediately began buying gear
—stuff I’d been making do without, like good monitors and a copy of
Pro Tools that didn’t come on an unlabeled disk bought from a
Chinese guy outside a supermarket. Then he got in touch with some
music students and persuaded them, by sheer charisma, to be our
unpaid session men. They followed orders while we fooled around,
trying to make them sound like Africa ’70 or the J.B.’s.
It’s hard to overstate how much of a change this was for me. I was
used to being alone. Suddenly I was surrounded by people, at the
center of chaotic all-night recording sessions which sometimes
turned into parties, as girlfriends and would-be girlfriends and other
hangers-on turned up, attracted by the pheromone musk of music.
One sign of things to come was Carter’s limited tolerance for
computers. He hated clicking mice and tapping screens. Soon he was
scouring auction sites for old equipment, anything with sliders he
could push, knobs and dials he could twist. He spent a lot of money
on a nineteen-eighties drum machine and a bass synthesizer,
legendary pieces of equipment that most people only knew as
software emulators. For a while we immersed ourselves in electro
and squelchy Acid sounds, imagining ourselves kings of the block
party, superstar emperors of the rave.
Until then I’d never given much thought to the difference between
the digital sounds I’d grown up with and their analog ancestors,
White Tears - Hari KunzruHari Kunzru / text
P. 24
sounds made by variations in the electrical charge flowing through
actual physical circuits. Electricity is not digital. It does not come in
discrete packets, but floods the air and flows through conductors and
shoots from the hands of mad scientists in silent movies. If it is
futuristic at all, it is a past version of the future, temperamental,
unstable, half-alive. When you start to fool around with old
synthesizers, building sounds by setting up waves in banks of
oscillators, it’s more like a chemistry experiment than the strange
Adderall obsessiveness of the digital studio. Carter and I began to
consider ourselves connoisseurs of analog echo effects. We were
unimpressed by the packages on the internet, so I found some
schematics and together we built a primitive spring reverb, which
made excellent wobbles and clangings that we used to excess on
every track we made. Soon we were trying to reproduce effects we’d
heard on music made at Lee Perry’s Black Ark studio in Jamaica.
That year Perry was our idol, our god. He would make use of
anything that came to hand. He’d buried microphones under a palm
tree and pounded the earth to make a rhythm. We did the same
thing, using a pine tree (this was the Northeast) with indifferent
results. He once installed a sand floor in the studio and built a hollow
drum riser out of wood and glass, filling it with water. This was
supposed to change the sound of the drum kit. We built our own
construction and part-flooded the school’s new music studio.
We worshipped music like Perry’s but we knew we didn’t own it, a
fact we tried to ignore as far as possible, masking our disabling
caucasity with a sort of professorial knowledge: who played congas
on the B-side, the precise definition of collie. The actual black kids at
our school, of whom there were very few, seemed to us
unsatisfactorily preppy or Christian or were basketball jocks doing
business degrees, devirginating sorority girls and talking loudly in
the commons about their personal brand. It seemed unfair. We were
the ones who wanted to be at a soundclash in Kingston. We knew
what John Coltrane was searching for when he overblew his tenor in
the middle section of A Love Supreme. There was a Nigerian called
Ade who we liked because his short dreads made him look vaguely
White Tears - Hari KunzruHari Kunzru / text
P. 25
like a Jamaican singer called Hugh Mundell, who’d been shot dead at
the age of twenty-one. Ade smoked a lot of Carter’s weed while
fielding questions about police brutality, but there was no getting
around the fact that he wore suede loafers and a Patek Philippe
watch. His old man was an oil trader in Lagos.
Before long we would look back on our college Rasta phase with
shame. Carter, who briefly owned a red-gold-and-green beanie hat,
lived in fear that pictures of him wearing it would turn up on
Facebook. We really did feel that our love of the music bought us
something, some right to blackness, but by the time we got to New
York, we’d learned not to talk about it. We didn’t want to be
mistaken for the kind of suburban white boys who post pictures of
themselves holding malt liquor bottles and throwing gang signs.
In our senior year Carter and I shared an off-campus apartment.
An uncertain and threatening future was visible on my horizon. I
could barely pay my half of the rent, even with a job in the college
development office and another making wraps and sandwiches at a
local deli. My debt was big enough for me to be dreaming about it,
icebergs and teetering bookcases looming in my sleep. When Carter
“bounced,” I knew I would bounce too, back to my dad’s place in New
Jersey. I wasn’t sure I could handle lying awake in my teenage
bedroom, listening for dead people in the hallway. I’d been hoarding
sleeping pills, in case I needed a quick exit.
I was researching internships in recording studios in New York
and Los Angeles. I was ready to accept anything—coffee assistant,
cable gimp—that would get me within reach of an actual paying
position before one of several different credit providers took me to
court. I’d set myself a deadline. If I hadn’t found a music job by a
certain date, I was going to accept a cousin’s offer to set me up with
an interview at the engineering company he worked for in Boston. If
that didn’t work out I’d do technical support, food service, whatever.
Carter, of course, didn’t have to worry. He talked vaguely about
traveling with that month’s girlfriend, a model called Mariam or
Miriam. She was African and spoke with a French accent, I think her
dad was the Senegalese consul in San Francisco. Carter was going to
White Tears - Hari KunzruHari Kunzru / text
P. 26
take her to the Caribbean on a sailing yacht. I wanted to spend time
with him, to wring out every last drop of friendship before we went
our separate ways. I was convinced that was how it would be: he’d
head on into the rest of his glamorous life while at best I’d be chained
to a photocopier in some suburban business park, at worst locked in
a State hospital, my ass hanging out of a backless gown. I spent long
hours in my bedroom, fretful to the point of tears, imagining Carter
at pool parties, drinking cocktails on high-floor balconies. I mourned
him as if he’d already gone.
Carter quickly got bored of my languishing. He started taking a
sarcastic tone, inventing derogatory nicknames for me. I was the
robot professor, the tin man. I lacked spontaneity and heart. By then
he had stopped listening, not just to the old house and techno we’d
once loved, but all contemporary music, anything that used digital
sounds. He’d been through a hip hop phase, scouring the internet for
twelve-inches by regional producers from the eighties and nineties.
Now he only wanted to listen to ethnographic recordings or scratchy
45’s of doo-wop bands. The Flamingos, The Clovers, The Stereo
Sound Of The !Kung Bushmen. An ever longer list of things was not
real enough for him, tainted by the digital sins of modernity. “Just
ones and zeroes,” he’d sneer, dismissing some recent part of the
culture. “Out of touch with the human body.” If I hadn’t used his
expensive drum machines and keyboards, they would have gathered
dust.
One night we were sitting up late in the kitchen. I was smoking a
joint to get rid of the stink of deli ham and mayonnaise as he plucked
distractedly at a new toy which had arrived by courier that morning,
a nineteen-twenties Gibson mandolin. He’d deleted his iTunes, he
said solemnly, angling the mandolin’s body so the starburst finish
caught the light.
—I know what you mean. The sample rate—
—Fuck the sample rate. It could be a million hertz, I wouldn’t care.
It could be all the hertz. This bullshit about lossless. There’s always a
loss, don’t you get that? There is always something missing.
White Tears - Hari KunzruHari Kunzru / text
P. 27
He started lecturing me, a speech I’d already heard a dozen times.
Technology was a trap. Modern musicians were locked in a box.
Digital sound had an absolute cutoff, a sonic floor that repelled the
listener and set an inhuman limit to the experience. You couldn’t go
below zero, had I ever thought about that? Whatever happened to
soul, to the vibration of an animal-gut string, the resonance of
lacquered rosewood? Always the stark binary. Zero or one. I admit I
stopped listening. He clutched the neck of the mandolin as if
physically grasping the elusive quality he sought. He seemed high to
me, higher than usual, scratching himself and making agitated
passes at the strings, little chops and cuts. I asked him what he’d
taken and he gave me a look and stalked off to the spare bedroom
that we used as a studio. I heard rustling and scraping and went in to
find him pulling cables out of the back of the patch bay.
—What are you doing?
—What I should have done years ago. This is all going in the trash.
—Carter, you’re wasted.
—What do you care?
He was brandishing one of the few pieces of equipment that
actually belonged to me, an expensive digital delay, hefting the
brushed steel case in one hand.
—Please, Carter. You’ll break it.
He pouted sarcastically, then went over to the window and threw it
out. I heard it smash on the sidewalk. We were on the second floor.
Someone could easily have been underneath. I noticed that my
breathing had become irregular. I pointed it out to him, that
someone could have been underneath. Don’t be such a pussy, he
sneered. It’s just a thing.
I tried to remain calm. I’d spent all day working for tips; I’d saved
for that machine; someone could have been killed, I’d been working
all day, working for tips, I’d saved, someone could have been killed
and—I threw myself at him, my hands scrabbling for his throat. At
that moment I wanted to kill him. I wanted to scrape away his looks
and charm and expose the skeleton of money underneath. People
White Tears - Hari KunzruHari Kunzru / text
P. 28
always remember Carter as an imposing figure. That’s the
psychological power he possessed. Actually he was slightly built. If
you saw him coming out of the shower or lying asleep in bed, he
looked like a waif, a lost boy.
The force of my attack knocked him over. His long blond locks
splayed out across the couch and his eyes opened wide in an
expression of anime surprise. It was as if he’d never seen me before. I
watched myself choking him, kneeling on his chest. I felt as if I’d
snorted ketamine and had suddenly been gifted all the time in the
world, time to notice the pores in his face and the hole in his right
earlobe where he’d removed a stud. I wanted to speak to him, but my
mouth was dry. A crust of white powder rimmed his left nostril and I
contemplated it, this scurf of whatever he’d been snorting, and I told
him I’m not a violent person, though I don’t think I spoke the words
out loud. Then, for a shocking instant I was looking at myself, lying
there on the couch, at my own eyes wide open in an expression of
surprise. I must have slackened my grip, because he twisted round
and shouldered me off onto the floor. I kept hold of him, bunching
fistfuls of his shirt, his hands now at my throat. As we rolled onto the
carpet, I heard the crunch of the mandolin under my back.
Of course there was some truth in his accusation, otherwise I
wouldn’t have lost control of myself so catastrophically. I have
always respected material objects. Not as status symbols or anything
like that. I don’t have any particular need to be envied. Carter had
never had to yearn for anything, a tool or toy or an instrument,
something that would enlarge his possibilities or make his life easier.
If he wanted it, he clicked and it came. I’d spent hours of my life,
days, weeks at a time, fantasizing about musical equipment that I
could not afford to buy. That mandolin was beautiful because it was
useful. The sound of it breaking took all the heat out of my attack.
Carter broke my grip and straddled me, pinning my arms with his
knees. Then he began to punch me in the face. People always look
aroused when they’re acting violently. They’re abandoned, their
guard is down. I tasted blood in my mouth and in my jolted, jumbled
state it occurred to me that if I let him beat me unconscious, to death
White Tears - Hari KunzruHari Kunzru / text
P. 29
even, all my problems would be solved. It would be easy to fall into
darkness, watching the wild expression on his face.
But it didn’t work out like that. No beautiful death for Seth. I let
my body go limp and closed my eyes but my surrender must have
bored Carter because he stopped hitting me and sat back against the
couch, breathing heavily and rubbing his throat. I rolled over,
coughing. The mandolin was in two pieces, the neck snapped clean
through, just below the headstock.
—What the fuck? he croaked. What the actual fuck?
—You shouldn’t make everything about money.
—Get away from me.
—You shouldn’t do that. You shouldn’t do that to people.
—If you care so much about that stupid box, I’ll get you another.
—Do what you like, I don’t care what you do.
I woke up the next morning to find him gone. I supposed our
friendship must be over. I thought he’d come home and tell me to
move out. But he never did. Days went by, a couple of weeks. I served
customers at the deli and wrote job applications in a state of numb
depression. I didn’t think about making music. There is a place I
sometimes go to where no value attaches to anything. The world is
flat. One sensation is exactly equal to the next. Putting your hand on
someone’s skin or in the flame of a candle. When it’s particularly
bad, it becomes a visual condition. I can look out the window and see
only churn, shapes and colors that don’t add up to anything. Visible
light of various wavelengths. I can spend hours playing computer
games or watching internet porn. Food, when I remember to eat,
tastes like ashes on my tongue.
As I waited for Carter to come back and end it, I ran through
mazes with a machine gun, masturbated, bombed alien cities flat,
and all I really thought about was how I’d burned out my palate and
couldn’t taste my food. One afternoon, I returned from work to find,
among the pizza boxes and dirty underwear on my bed, a brand-new
digital delay. Seeing it, pristine in its shrink-wrapped box, I
underwent an ecstatic convulsion. I’d been forgiven. Pacing the
White Tears - Hari KunzruHari Kunzru / text
P. 30
apartment at night, I had called Carter terrible names, spiteful
names designed to push him away. But now he was home and I was
forgiven and I danced a fucked-up celebration dance, one hand in the
air, the other clutching the waistband of my sweat pants, which were
about to slip off. When I got myself together I scooted through the
apartment, cleaning up around the sofa where I spent most of my
time, picking up soda cans and tipping the contents of several
makeshift ashtrays—plates, cans, a small plastic bottle—into a
grocery bag. I took a shower and examined myself in the mirror.
When I sucked in my stomach, my jutting hipbones framed a
concavity. I could count my ribs. I wondered if Carter would notice.
I’d done the dishes and was mopping the floor when he breezed in,
a joint drooping from the corner of his mouth. He had been staying
with friends in California and was sporting—I think that’s the word—
a porkpie hat and an army jacket and vintage Nike sneakers and two
fistfuls of silver rings. I hadn’t seen any of it before. He must have
spent all his time in California buying hats and jackets and sneakers
and rings.
—Hey brother, he said, all Superfly.
I resisted the impulse to hug him and modulated my voice to
match.
—What’s up?
—Expressing with my full capabilities. I got you another box.
—I saw. Thanks, bro. About the mandolin—
—Don’t sweat it. I ordered another.
And with that, the fight was over. Often it was like that with Carter.
By mutual agreement, we would close the trapdoor on a thing and
never speak of it again. That same night he asked me if I wanted to
move to New York with him. I couldn’t believe it. Reality had
inverted itself. I had been so full of despair, and now I was going to
live in New York with Carter. I was one of the Lord’s anointed.
White Tears - Hari KunzruHari Kunzru / text
P. 31
A CIRCUIT OF SHOWS AND CLUBS AND PARTIES. Parties in basement
bars, on midtown rooftops, in Bushwick warehouses with water
streaming down the walls. Me at the very center of it all, beckoned
past the velvet rope, given the nod, the wristband, the drink tickets,
the bump of coke. We cycled to Coney Island. We tripped on Chinese
lab chemicals in Prospect Park. It seems absurd now that we had so
much time to waste. I could make a coffee run and a round of record
stores last all day.
Rich young people have usually been taught, either by their
parents or bitter life experience, that certain things can be a barrier
to forming relationships. Certain things being a euphemism for
money. Carter hated to have it mentioned. One stray remark could
end a conversation; he’d just turn his back and walk away. By the
time we made the move to New York, I’d adopted a religious attitude
towards the many benefits that came to me: bow your head, open
your hands, silently give thanks. Money was Carter’s invisible helper,
a friendly ghost making things happen in the background. Cars
arrived, restaurant tabs got picked up. When it was time to change
scenery, money dissolved the city into a beach or a ski lodge. The
thing was never to point out that this was happening. Since I couldn’t
work out how I came to be there, why I was Carter’s faithful squire
instead of some other studio engineer, none of it seemed real. It was
all illusion, red dust, shit turning up in FedEx boxes.
When Carter decided we were going to set up a recording studio, it
just sprang into existence. He came into my room one day with the
keys to a building by the water in Williamsburg. We cycled over and
there it was. Contractors were already at work, installing
White Tears - Hari KunzruHari Kunzru / text
P. 32
soundproofing, building partition walls. The gear was magnificent,
none of it new, always with a history, everything at least forty years
old, tube amps and sixties fuzzboxes and a desk certified to have
once been installed at Fame studios in Muscle Shoals. Vocals went
through a pair of nineteen-fifties AKG C12’s that cost fifteen
thousand dollars. When the remodeling was finished, we plugged in
and started looking for business. Six months out of college and I was
in New York, running a fucking studio. Carter had a very particular
idea about what he wanted to do. We were billing ourselves as audio
craftsmen, artisans of analog. We would even offer to record to
quarter-inch tape, if that’s what the client wanted. He knew a place
that could press from it, so we could make vinyl records of new music
that hadn’t been digitized at any stage of production. Ye olde
stereophonicke sounde. Step right up.
Carter cut off his dreads and began to dress as if the year was 1849
and he was heading west to pan for gold. He wasn’t alone. At that
time Bedford Avenue was full of hobos and mountain men and Pony
Express riders. They were our first clients, pioneers and gunfighters
hunched over drum kits, tweaking guitar pedals. I gradually realized
they weren’t nineteenth-century revivalists at all. They were sixties
revivalists, revivalists of the western revival of the nineteen sixties.
Their girlfriends wore ponchos and wide floppy hats and everyone
photographed each other with olde-timey filters, sepia and bleached
out yellow.
In his personal music taste Carter was hovering around 1950, in
some Houston basement with Lightnin’ Hopkins singing through a
guitar amp. That’s how he wanted everything to sound just then.
Hollow, buzzing and raw. There was a song called “Black Cat Bone”
that he’d play over and over. It sounded terrible, as if it had been
recorded in a coffin. To him, it was the apogee of audio perfection.
His record collecting had taken on a new level of seriousness. If he
was beaten at an auction, he would scream at the screen. We spent
evenings throwing down shots and doing lines on the coffee table
while he told me how he needed such and such a record. How I
White Tears - Hari KunzruHari Kunzru / text
P. 33
would never understand (being Spock, the tin man, etcetera) the
emotional gravity of his loss.
Meanwhile we began to lock into a production sound. This organ.
That handclap. Put the guitar in a cave and the vocal raw and
breathy, right up front. Add surface noise, a hint of needles plowing
through static, throw the whole thing back in time. Rock bands loved
us. We did a record with some punk chicks from LA who were fans of
the sixties Detroit girl groups. Big hair and sailor tattoos, that whole
deal. We blew up their harmonies into towering melodrama, sprayed
on the fuzz and pressed onto pink vinyl. It sold out in a week. After
that the internet began to pay attention and we got hired to do some
tracks for an album by a big British band. I hated their music and the
whole Rolling Stones junkie troubadour bullshit that went along with
it, but it was an opportunity and we made sure we didn’t screw up.
The present is dry, but add reverb and you can hear time reverse its
flow, slipping on into the past, into echo and disaster. It’s a trick,
usually, just clever technique, except when it’s not. Twenty years
ago. Thirty years ago…Distance can create longing. It can open up
the gap into which all must fall. When they heard what we’d done to
their generic three-chord songs, the Brits were overjoyed. You made
me sound amazing, the singer told us, in his nasal London drawl.
Timeless. You made me sound like Skip James.
There are ways you can use a studio. Things you can do that open
up impossible spaces in the mind. You can put the listener in a room
that doesn’t exist, that couldn’t exist. You can put them in an
impossible room.
White Tears - Hari KunzruHari Kunzru / text
P. 34
I remember how
imminent it used to feel, how exciting. The old world was dissolving,
all the grime of the past sluicing away in digital rain. The future was
reflective, metallic. Soon liquid drops of mercury would reconstitute
themselves into spacecraft, weapons, women and men. Now I would
say the future is behind me. It is, in any case, out of my reach. It
would be easy to put the blame on Carter, on his melancholy
attachment to the crackle and hiss, but I bear my share of
responsibility. I let my guard down. I let myself fall. Nostalgia: from
the Greek “nostos”—homecoming—and “algos” pain or ache: the
pain a sick person feels because he is not in his native land, or fears
never to see it again. Now I am nostalgic for the future, which was
my native land.
One weekend my dad came to town. He wanted us to bond, so he
took me to “Sunday jazz brunch” at one of the clubs in the Village,
the ones that trade on the fantasy that as you eat your bad burger
you’ll be transported to the wild and swinging bebop era and all the
city breakers and European backpackers at the tables around you will
magically morph into angelheaded hipsters burning like roman
candles in the night. Not that my dad even liked jazz. I don’t know
what he liked. I think he thought that place was my scene.
It was an act of duty, most probably. My brother was living in Las
Vegas. He hadn’t been in touch. Dad mentioned, as he sometimes
did, that he had “promised to hold the family together for mom.” He
was making an effort. We drank watery Bloody Marys and I tried to
tell him about the studio. All he could think to say was, so he’s rich,
your friend. He tried his best, hammily nodding and tapping his
WHEN DID I LOSE TOUCH WITH THE FUTURE?
White Tears - Hari KunzruHari Kunzru / text
P. 35
fingers on the table, demonstrating that he “liked something I liked,”
that we had “shared interests.” Some loser took a busy, vibeless tenor
solo and a leathery blonde who would never be Julie London, let
alone Ella or Billie, scat-screeched oooon-a-cleeear-daaay and I
prayed for release because that wasn’t music, it was the death of
music, what happens when people repeat the same gestures for forty
years after they lose all meaning.
When we said our goodbyes on the sidewalk outside, we knew that
was it. Nothing happened. Nothing that would make a story. We
were always going to lose touch.
A few days later Carter and I were asked to sit down with a major
label. We found ourselves in a midtown office with a view of the
Hudson, talking about a famous white hip hop artist who wanted to
pay his dues to the tradition by releasing an album of classic covers.
The executive running the meeting had walnut skin and a facelift that
made him look like a pilot in a centrifuge, a clean-cut American hero
experiencing some large multiple of earth’s gravity. He tried to
impress us by telling an embarrassing story about doing coke with
Sly Stone. His assistant was so beautiful, I didn’t dare meet her eye.
She should have been on a yacht. The executive told her to bring us
drinks and when she bent over to put the tray on the coffee table, he
leaned back to check out her ass and made an insufferable I know,
right? face at Carter, who looked back at him blankly. I was worried
about Carter. His head wasn’t in the game.
The rapper arrived with his people and the room rearranged itself
around him as he perched on the edge of a lounger, cradling a chai
and explaining that he essentially considered himself a curator. He
was a sincere young man from Maine, who’d had a Billboard number
one with a song about drug dealing and had recently (according to a
magazine someone left in our bathroom) purchased a nice-looking
beach house in St. Barts. Onstage he was like one of those internet
videos that illustrates the whole history of something in ninety
seconds. Hyperactive, encyclopedic. Between verses he did James
Brown dance moves, all slides and splits and theatrical sexual
fainting, snapping into more modern styles: breaking, pop and lock.
White Tears - Hari KunzruHari Kunzru / text
P. 36
In person he was surprisingly low-key. He was always giving quotes
about feeling “humble” or “in awe” of one or other canonical black
star. Now, he explained, in a half-whisper that forced everyone to
lean forward slightly, it was time to take his humility a step further.
Every track on his album was to be a tribute to a particular period
and style of African American music, from ragtime through fifties
RnB to eighties boogie. Nineteen ninety, the year of his birth, was the
cutoff. He was not going to cover other people’s songs, but remix his
own material in other styles, the styles of the great artists of history.
As the executive explained:
—It’ll be like my man was born in different time periods.
—My Past Lives, said the rapper. Am I right?
I said I thought it was a good name.
—I’ve decided vinyl only, he added. The executive said they would
talk about that. I thought we were pitching to do one track, but it
became clear that they wanted us to produce the whole album. It was
a career-making opportunity. The rap star loved our precision. He
loved our patina. Our patina was on a whole other level of precision.
He told us he thought of us like those Chinese oil painters who turn
out perfect reproductions of Monets and Cézannes to sell on the
internet.
Expressing enthusiasm wasn’t my job, Carter was the one with the
social skills, but instead of complimenting the rap star and closing
the deal, he was staring out the window, tapping on his knees and
humming the chess player’s blues under his breath.
Put me under a man they call Captain Jack
Put me under a man they call Captain Jack
He wrote his name all down my back
He’d been humming it for days. I’d hear the track on repeat, the a
cappella voice singing its threatening, melancholy lyric. A year
earlier, that voice wouldn’t have had such an impact on him. It
turned up just when he became receptive. All postwar music had
White Tears - Hari KunzruHari Kunzru / text
P. 37
vanished from his life. The electric guitars and thumping rhythms of
the nineteen forties and fifties had faded into prewar blues
recordings, lone guitarists playing strange abstract figures, scraping
the strings with knives and bottlenecks and singing in cracked,
elemental voices about trouble and loss. Lately, he’d set up a 78rpm
turntable in his bedroom. He would sit on the floor close to the
speakers. It was as if the chess player’s blues had risen up to meet
him, as if he’d summoned it into his room.
A lot of people find early recordings unlistenable. I did too. The
audio quality is so poor, instinctively my brain wants it cleaned up.
Carter had explained that some of the records were so rare that only
single copies were known. In some cases that lone copy was worn
out. The pressings had been bad in the first place, companies
skimping on shellac, using too much clay and cotton filler in the mix.
Even in mint condition, some of them sounded as if they’d been
scoured with sandpaper. I suppose it was inevitable that, sooner or
later, Carter would run into those old singers. They were as far back
in audio time as you could go. He’d been following their traces
through downloads and vinyl compilations to a wooden box lined
with green baize that he was gradually filling with expensive original
78’s. He had begun to talk about songs by referencing their catalog
numbers, scouring want lists and dealer sites for work by musicians
so obscure that even their real names were in doubt.
The rapper had been talking about his respect for The Last Poets,
who he kept referring to as The Last Prophets. Carter cut across him
and spoke directly to me.
—I can’t believe you’re not out looking for him.
—Looking for who?
—You met him at the chess tables, right? Maybe he plays there
regularly.
I was thrown. It took me a moment to realize what he meant.
—Let’s talk about this later.
The executive asked if Carter needed anything. People always told
me, said the rapper, with the air of a man trying to cut through
White Tears - Hari KunzruHari Kunzru / text
P. 38
bullshit to the realness within, they said pull up your pants and act
white.
I said I understood.
—I spent hours with my notebook, just honing my skills. I went to
parties way out in the hood.
Carter scowled. The executive tapped him on the knee and told
him that his assistant would get him anything. Anything at all,
double underscore. Somehow we stumbled through another fifteen
minutes, but the meeting had essentially fallen apart. We left with a
lot of hugs and complicated handshakes, but without a definitive
agreement to do the record.
I knew we could make a killer album. I had a lot of unused
material that I didn’t know what to do with. Because of Carter’s
voracious and well-funded collecting, I was sitting on super-rare
breaks that would lose their value the instant someone else ripped
them off. We could make tracks that sounded like 1973 because we
had tracks from 1973, hyper-rarities no one else possessed. Secret
knowledge. Gnosis. I couldn’t understand why Carter wasn’t excited.
Outside on the sidewalk, I confronted him.
—What the fuck was that? I asked. He lit a cigarette.
—He can kiss my ass.
—He’s huge. Everything he does charts.
—So? We’re doing him a favor even talking to him.
—Come on, man. Don’t screw this up. It’s what we’ve been
dreaming about.
—This is our music, Seth. We live it. We feel it. He thinks he can
just swan in and buy it off the shelf?
—Do you know how insane you sound?
He shrugged.
We stood around, awkwardly, smoking and shuffling our feet.
Then he summoned a car on his phone, got in it and drove away.
White Tears - Hari KunzruHari Kunzru / text
P. 39
I DIDN’T SEE CARTER AGAIN until the next morning. I had slept badly,
so when he burst into my room, I was groggy and disoriented. He
pulled the sheet off the bed and made an announcement: his brother
Cornelius was having a weekend party at the family place in Virginia
and we were going.
—Taking off from Teterboro in three hours, so pack a bag.
—What?
—Corny chartered a six-seater for his friends, and some of them
dropped out. My God, you look disgusting. Were you drinking last
night?
—No.
I sat up, yawning and picking gunk out of my eyes. I didn’t want to
know why he was suddenly so charged up when he had been
completely apathetic at our meeting. He was operating at an
atypically high intensity, full of plans and designs, stalking around
the apartment wearing a dress shirt and neat khaki slacks dug out
from God knows what forgotten corner of his closet.
Put me under a man called Captain Jack, he sang. Wrote his
name all down my back.
I padded into the kitchen and fumbled angrily with the coffee
machine.
—Why are you dressed like a Mormon? I thought you hated your
brother.
—I never said that, Seth. I would never say that.
—Pardon me for asking. Look, are you OK?
White Tears - Hari KunzruHari Kunzru / text
P. 40
—Sure. Come on, hustle hustle, finish your cereal. One thing, the
guys traveling with us are douchebags, but you can relax because
Leonie is coming too.
Leonie. A wound in my side.
I only met Carter’s sister after we came to New York. We went to
an opening at a little storefront gallery on the Lower East Side. The
place had been a leather goods wholesaler, and the signage was still
on the window and over the door. Bags, shoes, belts, fancy goods.
The sidewalk was blocked by smokers, bikes clamped to every sign
and lamppost. I shouldered my way in behind Carter, fishing for the
last few bottles of beer at the bottom of a giant bucket filled with
mostly melted ice. Leonie was an artist. Or trying to be one. Carter
couldn’t decide how seriously to take her. She’s very solemn, he
warned. She drops a lot of French names. We squeezed through a
crowd of kids in thrift store clothes ironically referencing the nineties
suburbia they’d escaped to come and make it in the city. Here and
there were signs of money: an older couple protected from the rabble
by a slick young man who I assumed was the gallerist, another couple
smoking outside, studiously ignored by everyone around them, an
instantly recognizable musician and her actor boyfriend.
It was almost impossible to look at the show, which had work by a
dozen young artists, but since the place was so small Leonie’s
contribution wasn’t hard to find. She’d made a video of herself
dressed in exercise clothing and ski boots, stomping about in a
studio, crushing pills and capsules underfoot. She kicked about
bottles of vitamins and nutritional supplements. After a while, she
started to pour big tubs of protein powder on the floor.
—How long did that take to make, Carter fake-whispered. Ten
minutes?
—Oh, much less.
Stricken, we turned round. There she was, making a sarcastic face
at us. Her tangled blond hair was tied back with a scarf. She wore
jeans and a battered biker jacket, downtown uniform for someone
who doesn’t want to look like they’re trying too hard. I’d seen
pictures, but the sight of her and Carter together was still a visual
White Tears - Hari KunzruHari Kunzru / text
P. 41
shock: the same high cheekbones and straw-blond hair, the same
blue eyes contradicted by heavy darkish brows. A single image,
strobing. As I looked more closely, I saw that her mouth had a slight
irregularity, a warp or cast that pulled up her top lip and exposed her
teeth, marring what would otherwise have been classical Northern
European perfection. It was as if she’d heard unpleasant news, a
betrayal or disappointment that had left a permanent trace of
sourness. She was three years older than Carter, and though his
remark had clearly annoyed her, she leaned over and kissed him in
the time-honored gesture of indulgent big sisters, bringing her hand
up under his chin and squeezing his face to make his lips bulge.
—You’re an ape.
Carter said sorry.
—I liked it, I said, distancing myself from his rudeness. She looked
starkly at me and turned back to her brother.
—If you make the right gesture, craft doesn’t matter. It could take
ten seconds.
—You know you’re just covering your ass because you can’t draw.
She punched him hard in the shoulder.
—Go fuck yourself, you’re supposed to be here to support me, not
give me a crit.
—So are you going to stay on here for a while? Or do you want to
go get a drink?
We ended up at dinner with a big crowd, a waiter’s nightmare of
people shifting seats, going outside to smoke and take calls, arriving
late and disappearing early. All Leonie’s friends seemed to be from
somewhere else, some other city in some other country. It was the
first thing they talked about, their geographical otherness. They
found Carter intermittently charming, asking him questions about
music and listening intently to his answers, yet there was something
patronizing about their interest. The conversations were not
sustained. Me, of course, they treated with barely disguised
contempt. In the pecking order of that table, it was clear who was on
top. A trio of artists in haute redneck attire, with full-sleeve tattoos
White Tears - Hari KunzruHari Kunzru / text
P. 42
and unruly facial hair, were ordering steaks and expensive red wine,
roistering, playing to the crowd. When they spoke, the others turned
to listen, particularly when the alpha, a bearish man with dark circles
under his eyes and a drinker’s paunch, began to enumerate his
beliefs about art. They seemed standard enough to me—he was for
tearing down the old and bringing in the new—but he delivered his
platitudes as if they were important and shocking, something to be
shouted through a megaphone at a Happening. When he finished, his
trucker buddies refilled his glass and clapped him on the back like a
soldier returning from patrol. In the momentary silence, Leonie tried
out a joke.
—I have a simple aesthetic. As long as my mother hates something,
I know it must be worth doing.
She sat back, expecting laughter, but the table took its cues from
the important painter and he seemed irritated.
—You show your mother your work?
—No, of course not. What would she say? She likes the
Impressionists. She carries round a little bag she bought at Giverny.
I thought this was funny, but only one or two other people smiled.
The important painter shook his head.
—You probably went there, right? To see the waterlilies.
—Yeah, so? I went to Giverny with my mom.
—She probably took you to Florence too, and the Parthenon and
Basel and Venice for the Biennale.
—You want to see my passport?
—No, I don’t have to. I’m saying that, you know, everyone has a
role. A position. Maybe you should bow to the inevitable and get into
collecting.
The table treated this as a killer punch line, a zinger. Leonie didn’t
show she was angry by anything she said or did, but I could see a
cord of muscle standing taut in her neck, and her laughter wasn’t
well-acted. Soon afterwards she left. Carter sat there, rocking slightly
in his seat, giving the important painter filthy looks, rehearsing
putdowns he was too tongue-tied to deliver.
White Tears - Hari KunzruHari Kunzru / text
P. 43
It was a thing you soon noticed about Leonie, how she would bring
up her mother at inappropriate moments, always to mention some
difference of opinion, some disagreement. For Carter, the parent he
needed to overcome was his father, but the differences between these
two were clear-cut. It was obvious the son would never sit on a board
or manage a business. Leonie’s lines were less distinct. I would later
find out that her mother was an amateur painter, a patron of DC
galleries and museums. Art school was something they had agreed
on.
After that evening, I always tagged along when Carter was going to
see her. We went to more openings, a dinner in someone’s loft. I was
fascinated by her arcane social rituals, the ever-changing pecking
order of artists and curators and collectors that governed where she
went and what she said there. Before I met the Wallaces I had no
idea any of that even existed. Carter, who grew up flicking finger food
at movie stars and captains of industry, thought his sister’s scene was
lame. Full of Eurotrash, he said. A lot of nobodies pretending to
come from money.
When Carter told me Leonie would be traveling with us to
Cornelius’s party, my face must have betrayed me, because he
laughed.
—Now you want to go.
I knew my interest in his older sister was ridiculous, but I didn’t
like to be mocked. I grabbed a book from my nightstand and threw it
at him. It went wide, clattering against the door. As he sauntered into
the kitchen he sang:
Went to the Captain with my hat in my hand
Went to the Captain with my hat in my hand
Said Captain have mercy on a long time man
Then he changed out of his teenage church clothes into something
more like his normal attire, jeans shorts, a broad-brimmed hat that
made him look like a Rough Rider, and a poetic linen shirt with big
White Tears - Hari KunzruHari Kunzru / text
P. 44
sleeves gathered into the cuffs. With the car waiting outside, and me
in the living area, a weekend bag packed and a coffee in a thermos
mug ready in my hand, he shut himself in his room and didn’t come
out for forty-five minutes. As usual, the driver had my number as the
contact, and he kept calling to warn me that we couldn’t be late for
wheels-up. I went to the door to knock and heard Carter hissing
under his breath. He was having an argument about money with
Betty.
—Did you try the other account?
I was never sure how much I was supposed to know about Betty.
She handled things. Booked travel, researched, offered options.
Carter only talked to her when he thought I wouldn’t overhear. I’d
never met her, never even found out where she was located. All I had
to go on was his hand cupped over the phone, the shameful
masturbatory hunch of his back as he tended to the logistics of his
charmed life. Later he told me, in a casual tone of voice, that the
reason we were going down to Virginia was because he wanted to talk
to his older brother about investing in the studio.
—He’ll be cool, he said, half to himself, as we were driven through
the Midtown Tunnel. He won’t want to be hanging around in the
control room. He has no actual interest in music.
—He’d be like a partner?
—God no. At worst we’ll have to get him and his asshole friends
comped at some clubs, so they can come on to chicks by telling them
they’re in the music business.
In the five years we’d known each other, Carter had never invited
me to his family home. There were other houses (in Aspen, on the
Mississippi Gulf Coast, Paris) but his parents lived in this place for
much of the year, in a DC exurb that was popular with wealthy
government and business people. Carter occasionally disappeared
there on summer weekends, hungover and grumbling, required to
appear at some clan summit. I imagined an informal lunch, a lawyer
dropping by. Documents to sign over coffee.
—The trouble with my family is there’s always some angle.
White Tears - Hari KunzruHari Kunzru / text
P. 45
The tunnel lights flickered in the window.
—It’s the company. It poisons everything. You know. Different
people have different levels of control. None of us can speak to each
other, not really.
—What about you and Leonie?
—Especially me and her.
The car pulled up at the airport, and a doorman with an earpiece
showed us into a modest terminal, furnished as blandly as a regional
hotel lobby.
—Finally!
Carter didn’t enter Leonie’s embrace, raising a hand in limp
benediction.
—In your usual fragile mood, I see, Carty.
—I wish you wouldn’t call me that.
—Seth, I’m so honored you’re here with us to celebrate our older
brother’s surgical transformation into our father.
Leonie always used my name in a vaguely insulting way, as if
testing it for impurities. She turned her eyes away and I felt as if my
face had been seared on a grill. I tried to make bright conversation.
—So what’s the occasion? Is there a reason for this party?
Carter smiled at his sister.
—He is a great son.
—Such a great son.
—I mean really.
—No really.
—So great.
—A great son.
Neither of them answered my question. I didn’t mind. I always
loved to hear them talk like that, finishing each other’s thoughts. I
would have gone on expeditions, waited hours and days in a
camouflaged hide.
White Tears - Hari KunzruHari Kunzru / text
P. 46
—The rest of your party is here, said the pilot, who had been
hovering in the background. This way.
Corny’s three friends had all been at Princeton with him and now
they were in finance. That was about as far into their lives as I cared
to go. They didn’t like the look of us either, and after introductions
were made and interest faked, we all stood around, not making eye
contact. Then the pilot escorted us to the plane and waited patiently
as each of them took a picture of himself and set about posting it to
social media. Hashtags #flyprivate #highlife #goodlife. No doubt
their feeds also had pictures of their watches and bar bills.
Leonie handed a large straw hat to the hostess, who put it in a
locker. We settled into the cavernous calf-leather seats.
#wheelsup
—What can I get you gentlemen to drink?
The hostess knew the answer before they said it. She opened the
champagne and the bros clinked glasses, congratulating each other
on whatever it was they thought they were experiencing.
—This is it!
—The shit!
—The shiznit.
Carter and Leonie hunched down instinctively in their seats.
Leonie asked for a mineral water. Carter, one-upping the bros, rolled
and lit a joint, which made the hostess instantly nervous. She
conferred with the captain, who closed the cockpit door. Poker-faced,
she produced an ashtray. I nursed a cold beer and looked at Leonie,
at the sunlight streaming in through the Gulfstream’s window onto
the contours of her face. Carter prodded her with his foot, to get her
attention.
—You go first. Why are you here?
She rolled her eyes.
—Why get into it?
—Because I want to know.
—I’m just here to congratulate Cornelius on his important new job.
White Tears - Hari KunzruHari Kunzru / text
P. 47
—Oh, sure.
—Get off my back. Anyway, what about you?
Carter gave a theatrical shrug and pursed his lips. We sat in
irritated silence, listening to Corny’s friends talking about bottles and
models. Once the champagne had kicked in, they began to pester the
hostess.
—Got any beats?
—Now you talking!
—We should have some sounds all up in here!
Leonie turned round sharply.
—No beats. No music. No nothing. This isn’t some shitty beach
party.
They had zero comeback. Not a squeak. For the rest of the short
flight they sat and sullenly checked their phones.
We landed at a small airport somewhere outside Washington. The
young bankers got into a waiting limo van, which Carter and Leonie
ignored, stalking across the tarmac to a car rental place, where they
picked up a little Japanese convertible. I crouched in the bucket seat
with the bags, holding Leonie’s delicate hat on my lap to protect it as
we drove at high speed out into the suburbs, past farmhouses and
white fences and flagpoles flying the Stars and Stripes. Carter
switched on the sound system and the car was flooded by the last
thing I wanted to hear. Believe I buy a graveyard of my own. I asked
if we could have something else, but Carter pretended he couldn’t
hear me. Believe I buy me a graveyard of my own. Put my enemies
all down in the ground. Eventually after a few repeats, Leonie leaned
over and switched to a DC hip hop station.
Gradually the fences got higher and the houses vanished from
view. At last, Carter took a sharp corner onto a side road, then up a
driveway barred by a wrought iron gate. He spoke into an intercom
and the gate slid back to reveal a scene like an eighteenth-century
print, a tree-lined avenue winding away towards an unseen house.
Gravel crunched beneath the wheels; solitude unfolded over us.
White Tears - Hari KunzruHari Kunzru / text
P. 48
To my surprise, when it revealed itself, the house was on a modest
scale, more like a summer place than the enormous mansion I’d been
expecting. Old, though. Not old-style or “olde” but actually old, with
white plaster columns along a wide porch and little windows set in
the gables of a tiled roof. A vivid lawn ran downhill towards
woodland that blocked all view of the outside world. The earth rolled
pleasingly, as if landscaped solely to frame that view. I think the
meaning of private property had never quite sunk in for me until
then; its weight, its peculiar authority. Privacy was disconnection,
the power to take a section of the world offline.
—It’s not that we own it, said Carter, as if reading my mind. We’re
just maintaining the asset for future generations.
We parked the car, and a man in a golf cart came to take our bags
down to the guesthouse, a two-story building screened by trees. As
we ambled down towards the pool, I wondered idly what kind of
electronic security measures were in place. Did motion sensors cover
the green lawn? Were there cameras in the hydrangeas? Whatever
they had was artfully disguised. The pool itself looked like a pond in
a fairy tale, with lily pads and a weeping willow and great rounded
mossy boulders on its banks. Around it, thirty or forty people were
hanging out on chairs and loungers. Most were in their twenties and
thirties, dressed in casual clothes and swimwear. A few of the
younger women wore bikinis, posing and laughing to attract the
attention of the men, who were mostly engaged with their phones
and their drinks. Here and there I spotted older faces, a cluster of
substantial sixty-somethings at a picnic table, two skinny middleaged women stretched out on loungers like a pair of lizards, eyeing
up the boys from behind their dark glasses. A large grill was tended
by three sweating black chefs, wearing tunics and white gloves to
turn over steaks and burgers. At the bar, they were serving juleps and
iced tea. Two men were lining up tequila shots, watching the girls in
the pool.
—How many hours a week on the stair climber?
—Not enough.
—That one, though.
White Tears - Hari KunzruHari Kunzru / text
P. 49
They looked Leonie up and down as we came in. She put on her
hat and turned away from them, effectively masking herself from
view. She was more beautiful than the women they’d been
appraising, and they were offended that she was making no effort to
please them. I watched their sexual interest curdle into a desire to
hurt her, take her down.
—Where’s Corny, Leonie asked Carter, apparently unconcerned.
—Up at the house. He’s probably watching us through his
binoculars.
As Leonie laughed, I tried to record it. Not literally. I tried to
imprint on my memory the unforced rise in pitch, the broken
descent. I would treasure it, house it in a place of honor, like the relic
of a saint. I was aware of the pathetic figure I cut. Sometimes, late at
night, I Googled her, looking at the same half-dozen party shots,
Leonie with her arm round a curator, a musician, the owner of a
West Village restaurant. When I imagined myself in their place,
being the man who took her home and made out with her in the taxi
and finally, in the privacy of some luxurious apartment, slipped the
straps of an expensive dress over her shoulders, I was brought up
sharply against my own physical meagerness. The contrast between
us was so grotesque that I could never enjoy the fantasy.
Once in a while in New York we went over to her TriBeCa loft. It
was a peculiar place, in a doorman building with a marble reception
desk and fresh-cut flowers in the lobby. When you got out of the
elevator, you felt as if you’d been teleported. Her books sat on metal
warehouse shelving. She slept on a mattress on a little plywood
platform. The walls had been stripped back to brick, and the floor
painted heavy-duty battleship gray. It was a facsimile, a simulation of
the kind of place other artists lived in, many stops away in the outer
boroughs. Everything about her domesticity was apparently careless.
Ashtrays and dirty plates. Bags of recycling propped up against a
wall. Part of the huge open space had been crudely partitioned by a
plasterboard wall that didn’t meet the ceiling, a white box inside
which she sometimes painted or shot photographs. We would hang
out at her fake squat with its panoramic view of the Hudson and I
White Tears - Hari KunzruHari Kunzru / text
P. 50
would watch the sunset and listen to her friends talking about this
show and that fair while she sat cross-legged on the floor in a pastel
jumpsuit or a lurid eighties sweater, transparently hoping that
someone would ask about the bubble-wrapped C type prints stacked
in neat rows against the far wall. Somehow they never did. I never
did. Not because I didn’t want to. If I’d dared, I would have asked
about her pictures.
Excuse me, she said, and made her way to the other side of the
pool, where she bent down and greeted a man in his fifties, one of a
group sitting and eating round a picnic table. He had an outdoor tan,
sailing or skiing, ruddy around the nose with white bands at his
temples where some kind of goggles had blocked the sun. His hair
was swept back in a gray mane. She kissed him on the cheek, and he
let his hand linger on her shoulder. As she talked, rocking
animatedly from foot to foot and playing with the brim of her hat, he
sat, half-turned on the bench, his eyes dipping down and back up
again, scanning her from knee to breast. There was something raffish
about him, a whiff of the bohemian that stood out against the
conservative golf wear of the other men at his table. The linen pants,
the popped collar on his shirt. I was offended by all of it, his boyishly
tousled hair, his air of well-fed hedonism. I waited for her to move
away, but she didn’t.
Carter disappeared to take a call, and I hovered by the grill, eating
a burger. I couldn’t see anyone who might be willing to talk to me, so
I drifted into the pool house, a quaint old building with a tiled roof
and cedar siding that had weathered almost to black. Inside it
smelled of chlorine and wet towels. A huge pair of oars hung from
the roof, trophies of some long-dead varsity crew. The walls were
hung with photographs of swimming parties dating back eighty
years. Recurrent faces, remixes of Carter and Leonie in baggy woolen
suits with rubber rings and drinks in their hands.
Guglielmo Marconi, the inventor of radio, believed that sound
waves never completely die away, that they persist, fainter and
fainter, masked by the day-to-day noise of the world. Marconi
thought that if he could only invent a microphone powerful enough,
White Tears - Hari KunzruHari Kunzru / text
P. 51
he would be able to listen to the sound of ancient times. The Sermon
on the Mount, the footfalls of Roman soldiers marching down the
Appian Way. I clapped my hands, listening to how the report was
absorbed by the walls, but reflected by the concrete floor. The pool
house had a strange tone, a particular blend of interior and exterior
that made me suddenly wary. I retreated back out into the party.
People sat on lawn chairs or stood waist-deep in the pool, bonded
in impenetrable social rings and hexagons. Things had gotten looser
while I’d been inside, louder. Drinking and the summer heat. By the
grill, one of the servants was cleaning up the shards of a broken
bottle. My phone went off in my pocket. Carter was calling me.
—Get a ride and come up here.
—Where?
—To the house. Cornelius wants to meet you.
Two staff members were leaning against their carts at the foot of
the hill. I walked up to them, but they didn’t acknowledge me. I
trudged upwards, reaching the top in a flop sweat. Unsure if it was
OK to go in through the front, I walked round to the back porch.
Finding the screen door open, I picked my way in over a clutter of
boots and hats and tennis rackets.
—Hello, is anyone there?
Crammed tightly together on the walls of the hallway were old
prints and maps. I had a glimpse of a small room, not much more
than a walk-in closet, containing what looked like a server rack, black
modules with red winking lights.
Carter appeared in a doorway.
—There you are.
—So what does Cornelius want with me?
—You’re my business partner. He wants to look you over, see what
he’s buying into.
—So no pressure.
—Don’t blow this, is what I’m saying.
—Jesus, Carter. Are your parents here too?
White Tears - Hari KunzruHari Kunzru / text
P. 52
—No, they’re in Europe. It’s just Corny.
We found him in a study or office, standing in front of a huge oak
desk on which sat no fewer than five screens, showing market data,
news tickers, surveillance views of the property. Leonie hadn’t been
joking about the binoculars. Dressed in the awkward smart casual of
men who spend their lives in suits, Corny was standing at a bay
window with a view downhill toward the pool, his legs braced,
training a pair of German precision lenses on the party like a
commodore on the bridge of his cruiser. As he formed his first
unfavorable impression of me, I got a closer look at the binoculars.
They were the military kind that incorporates a laser, returning
various kinds of range-finding information. Beautifully engineered.
Reluctantly, I made eye contact again to confirm that Leonie’s sneer
was playing across a face decorated with Carter’s nose and
cheekbones. The recombinant quality of this stranger in a buttondown shirt was uncanny; a hostile alien intelligence animating the
features of people I loved.
—So is this going to work? he asked.
—Sure, I said hesitantly, turning to Carter and silently cursing him
for leaving me so unprepared.
—Seth’s kind of a wizard. What he doesn’t know about music
technology isn’t worth knowing.
—And you think New York isn’t a mature market?
We both shrugged, at a loss.
—It’s like, too mature, said Carter. It’s decadent. People want to
get back to the source. The old school. They want things they can
touch.
I waited for him to say more, to give me a clue as to what we were
trying to sell, but he trailed off into silence, scuffing the rug with a
foot. The contrast between the two brothers was instructive. Corny,
neatly put together, impregnably respectable. Carter’s bare legs, the
tattooed skulls on his chest, visible in the deep V of his poet’s linen
shirt. Corny spoke slowly, savoring his own patronizing restraint.
White Tears - Hari KunzruHari Kunzru / text
P. 53
—I meant, are there other people who offer the same service?
What is your competition?
I’d never seen Carter blush before. Sure, he mumbled. Of course.
—So there are?
—No. We’re the only ones. We can do, like, a lot of stuff. No one
has what we have. I mean, in terms of equipment. And talent.
—Did you actually do any research? Or do you just know?
—Man, get off my back! Give me this one little area, at least. One
tiny little area where I’m the one who knows.
—Please don’t call me “man.”
Carter threw his arms up in exasperation. Corny made a
pantomime of thinking about his investment decision.
—If I do this, will you wash your hair?
—Fuck off.
—And wear underwear, and stop taking drugs?
—I knew this was pointless. Jesus, for a moment I actually thought
you weren’t going to be a dick.
—I am serious. You’re a goddamn disgrace.
—Seth, let’s get out of here.
Corny chuckled.
—God, Carty, don’t get your panties in a bunch.
He took a large leather-bound checkbook out of a drawer,
produced a pen.
—Like shooting fish in a barrel. How much, again?
—Fifty.
He sat down to write, arranging his materials with fussy formality.
—I’m satisfied you can’t be in that much trouble. If you had a drug
habit or you owed money to the mob, you’d have promised to wash
your hair.
Carter took the check and stuffed it into the back pocket of his
jeans.
—Like I said, this isn’t charity. We’ll hook you up, no doubt.
White Tears - Hari KunzruHari Kunzru / text
P. 54
—Dad would tell you to live within your means.
—That would involve Dad finding out my number from his
assistant.
—Such a martyr. And don’t take it out on Betty when you run out
of funds.
—Why not. She’s paid to deal with my shit.
—She’s only authorized to go up to a certain limit.
—But she’s paid, right. I’m her job.
—You’re all our jobs, Carter. Everybody does their share.
Corny made an ironic face, to show that he was waiting for the
thank-you he didn’t expect to get. He held it for a second or two, then
let it drop.
—So, I’m bringing some polo buddies into the city next weekend.
—Sure. I got you. Whatever you need.
—Great. I thought you might want to congratulate me, though. You
know Dad’s made me VP of Correctional Services?
—Really?
—Really. I’m in charge of the whole Walxr operation. Fifty-eight
facilities. All the ancillary services. Effectively I’m the CEO of my
own company within the Wallace Magnolia Group.
—Feet fitting the big shoes, huh?
—Be as sarcastic as you like, but you know he’d love to do
something for you too. If you cared enough.
—You are truly fucked in the head, Corny. You never take me
seriously. I don’t need a job. I have a job. I make music.
—You shouldn’t leave it too long. Don’t get stuck in that life.
He waved a hand at me, casually dismissing the visible
manifestation of “that life” like a tasteless shirt or an earring, a kid
brother’s foolish and transient choice. Carter sighed.
—Come on, Seth. We’re done here.
We hopped on a golf cart and pit-stopped at the guesthouse, where
we smoked a joint, leaning out over the balcony. I was aware that the
White Tears - Hari KunzruHari Kunzru / text
P. 55
check was still stuffed into the back pocket of Carter’s jeans, and I
asked him if he wanted me to hold on to it. Carter handed it over and
I filed it in the pocket of my laptop case. He asked if I really wanted
to stay the night. There was probably a scheduled flight back later on,
we could get on it. I told him I didn’t mind. Whatever he wanted to
do was fine. He seemed despondent, all the morning’s manic energy
broken on the jagged rocks of Cornelius. There was something
intimate about the moment that made me feel I could risk a question.
—I know it’s not my business, but why are you having to do this?
—Do what?
—Go to your brother. We’re making some money. You don’t need
to bow down before him.
He said nothing. I tried to work out if he was offended.
—I’m sorry. It’s just—we’re not in trouble, are we? Financially.
He shook his head.
—There’s stuff I want, that’s all.
—Stuff?
—Records. What else? Things have been put on shellac that I was
born to hear.
—What records?
—I have one or two things going on. Deals I’m trying to swing.
Don’t worry, you’ll get to hear whatever I buy.
Then we went back to the party. While we’d been away, afternoon
had collapsed into evening, and the staff were setting out tables for a
formal meal, lighting lanterns and hanging them in the trees. A fourpiece band set up on a little stage and began to play jazz standards.
People had disappeared to change, and were reappearing in cocktail
dresses, jackets and ties.
Carter looked at the table map and moved our place cards so we
were sitting with Leonie. only to find that when the meal started she
sat down at another table, next to the man she had been talking to by
the pool. The guests at our table were all twenty-something lawyers,
eager young folk whose firms were attached to the Wallace Magnolia
White Tears - Hari KunzruHari Kunzru / text
P. 56
Group like barnacles on the hull of an oceangoing tanker. After a
round of perky introductions, it became clear that I wasn’t worth
talking to and Carter was ignoring them, so they made conversation
amongst themselves. Carter sat with his phone between his legs,
checking an auction on eBay. I ate my diver scallops and my duck
and looked up at the lanterns in the trees, listening to the band
amble through “Now Is The Time.”
After the main course had been served, Cornelius Wallace stood
and gave a speech, acknowledging various people at the party and
thanking us for “sharing this milestone” with him. He made a joke
about being named the youngest member of the Magnolia board and
claimed to be very thankful to have “Roger and Bill and Harry” to
help him find his feet. Somehow he made his thanks sound like a
threat, as if Roger and Bill and Harry would soon find themselves
clearing their desks if they didn’t swiftly demonstrate loyalty to the
new regime.
They served coffee and dessert and people began to move around.
Some of the lawyers vacated their places and Leonie and her friend
came over to sit with us.
—Carter, this is Marc.
Marc shook Carter’s hand, then sat back with placid selfassurance, crossing his legs and shooting his cuffs and adopting the
expression of a man ready to be fascinated.
Carter said hi. There was a drawn-out pause.
Marc’s smile did not waver. Instead, though no one had asked, he
told us how he knew Leonie. From downtown, he said, with a
knowing underscore that made him sound almost archaeological. I
did some quick calculations. Young in the eighties.
—Actually, I bought one of her videos.
Is that what you do, asked Carter. Collect videos?
—No, I have a software company. Lately some other projects too. I
have an environmental nonprofit that takes up some of my time.
—Oh God, you’re that guy.
White Tears - Hari KunzruHari Kunzru / text
P. 57
Marc was measured in the face of this unexpected aggression.
Leonie looked furious. Carter sighed and scraped his chair back from
the table.
—Ones and fucking zeroes. Excuse me, I need to piss.
He stalked off. I wondered if I ought to go too. The silence became
awkward. Leonie filled it by introducing me to Marc, who shook my
hand and gave me his ready-to-be-fascinated face. Up to that point,
no one had acknowledged me.
—It was such a wonderful surprise to find out Marc was going to
be here. It’s positively made my evening.
Leonie’s smile was almost as radiant as Marc’s. She behaved as if
she and I were the greatest of friends, apparently hoping that I would
help cover for her brother’s rudeness. Then she and Marc told each
other again and again how pleased and surprised they were to see
each other at the party, until I became convinced that they had
arranged to meet, perhaps as part of some subterfuge. I looked on his
hand for a wedding ring, but didn’t see one. As they played out their
little scene, I shrunk further into myself. A silence descended which I
made no particular effort to fill, and they began to look around for
ways to move on.
There was whooping and shouting, and then a splash. Corny’s
friends from the plane had met another half a dozen young men as
moronic as themselves, and together they’d pushed a girl into the
swimming pool. Leonie used the opportunity to pull Marc away. I
watched them go, his hand brushing the small of her back as they
made their way towards the house. More than twenty years older.
Probably twenty-five. I felt very bitter, brimming with a poor young
man’s outrage against the old and rich. His thickening body against
hers, his knowing unworshipful hands.
Around me, the party was bifurcating, one faction already saying
good night, giving out business cards and promising to be in touch,
the other gearing up for some real fun, shots and powder and
sneaking in and out of rooms. Carter reappeared and told me not to
talk to him, because he’d lost the auction he’d been following and
now it was all he could do not to punch someone. A complicated
White Tears - Hari KunzruHari Kunzru / text
P. 58
cascade of transactions had depended on him buying a hillbilly
record, some Appalachian fiddle band. The fiddle band record would
make some kind of set or package with two others he already had,
and the three together might lure someone he’d been talking to
online to part with a worn but playable copy of Mississippi John
Hurt’s “Spike Driver Blues.” But he’d been outbid. He’d not been
paying attention. Someone else was using sniper software, so no
John Hurt record. It wasn’t fair. The loss had put him in a foul mood.
I knew from experience that it wasn’t a good idea to be around him.
All he’d want to do was pick at his wounds and work up an excuse to
lash out at me.
—What’s the deal with Marc, I asked, cautiously.
—Oh him. He’s another collector. Emerging artists, blah blah blah.
All so he can impress his Teva-wearing tech buddies with tales of
urban exploration.
—What about him and Leonie?
—Is she fucking him? I don’t even want to know.
I said I was tired and I’d probably go to bed. He went to the bar
and for a while I walked desultory circuits of the pool, listening to the
band race through “A Night In Tunisia.” From somewhere nearby I
heard the sound of a helicopter taking off. I don’t know why I chose
to go back into the pool house.
Inside, the noise of the party was muffled. The moon shone in
through a high window, throwing a slanted band of light over the
wall of photographs. The dead people in their swimsuits and tennis
whites crossed their rackets and raised their glasses in an ironic toast
to my social failure. Behind me was a row of changing cubicles. From
inside one of them I began to make out the sound of breathing. A
man’s breathing, ragged and deep. Then, quite distinctly, I heard the
man groan and a woman’s voice telling him to shut up. It was Leonie.
There was silence, and then a series of tiny, wet, noises. The man’s
breathing got deeper again. I was trapped by what I was hearing, my
feet glued to the ground by a sort of vile abjection. The groans
increased in urgency until, with a soft exhalation, the man came.
White Tears - Hari KunzruHari Kunzru / text
P. 59
I hid in the darkness.
A moment or two of scrabbling around, the clink of a belt buckle.
Only when it was too late did I realize that I should have left, that it
would only deepen my self-disgust to see the cubicle door swing open
and Leonie come out, adjusting her cocktail dress. I attempted to
compose myself, to form some emotional structure that wouldn’t
collapse. Then she stepped into the shaft of light and I saw her
flushed face, her disordered hair. Marc followed, buttoning his shirt.
I don’t know what made him look towards me, whether I made a
sound or gave some other clue. He saw me trying to bury myself in
the damp beach towels hung on pegs on the wall behind me. For an
instant he looked shocked. Then he broke eye contact by checking an
expensive diver’s watch, its steel bracelet half-buried in his grizzled
arm-hair. Excuse me, son, he said, allowing himself a half-smile. He
followed Leonie back out to the party.
White Tears - Hari KunzruHari Kunzru / text
P. 60
WHEN WE GOT BACK TO NEW YORK, Carter asked me for the audio I’d
made on my walks around the city. By that time he was claiming to
friends that he didn’t even own a computer anymore, so this was
surprising. He usually wanted nothing to do with my environmental
recordings. I put them on a drive for him and forgot about it.
The studio sucks up time. I wanted to lose myself, disconnect from
my obsessive thoughts about Leonie. Despite Carter’s behavior at our
meeting, the hip hop star was still interested in working with us, and
I closed the door on the world and trawled through recordings of
thirties dance bands, collecting samples for a demo. McKinney’s
Cotton Pickers, Cab Calloway, The Harlem Hamfats. Days passed,
taking me further away from that pool house, the shame and
confusion I’d brought on myself. My plan was to do a mix that
sounded like you could have heard it at the Cotton Club, all banjos
and muted trumpets. I had the files for one of the hip hop star’s hits,
the one about “going uptown” to “see what the dark side brings.” I
was basically trying to make it sound like Duke Ellington’s “Creole
Love Call,” without getting mixed up in a lot of complicated
arrangements.
Carter wasn’t interested in helping. He communicated his
preferences by shrugging whenever I brought the project up. He was
busy with something else, something he didn’t seem interested in
discussing. I thought perhaps it was a girl. One evening I was
collecting a burrito from a delivery guy at the studio door when
Carter appeared behind him, wearing sneakers and white earbuds.
For a minute, I thought he’d been jogging. None of this—the shoes,
the headphones, physical exercise—was normal. I put the food on the
White Tears - Hari KunzruHari Kunzru / text
P. 61
counter of the kitchenette and asked him if he wanted any. I hoped
he’d ask to hear the mix, which I thought was sounding good. He
didn’t answer, too absorbed in whatever he was listening to.
Eventually he gave up and held out the earbuds. I put them in and
heard a mariachi band playing on the subway—nasal harmonies, a
jaunty accordion, guitar. There was a change in the acoustic as the
doors opened, a muffled announcer’s voice saying something about
the train running express.
—This is my file?
—You remember where you were?
—The C train, I think. Uptown C.
—Oh. I guessed wrong. I thought it was the six.
He looked disappointed.
—You’re retracing my walks?
—You heard something, Seth. There might be other things.
—This is what you’ve been doing? All week?
—Mostly.
—There’s nothing on those recordings. I pulled out anything
worthwhile.
—So you say. You could have heard things you didn’t know you
heard.
—You understand how much work we have to do, right? We’re on
deadline.
—Let me get my laptop. I’ll prove it to you.
We sat down and he made me listen to audio that I’d recorded
somewhere in Bed-Stuy, an old homeless man shuffling up to me,
asking for money. I remembered him. He’d done a sort of lolloping
tap dance; he had a comic pitch: hey man hey brother make a
donation to the United Negro Bacon Sandwich Fund. I heard myself
laughing. Then he began to shout at me. You could tell that he was
close, right up in my face, snarling pay me pay me what you owe me
motherfucker.
I remembered the man, but I had no memory of that.
White Tears - Hari KunzruHari Kunzru / text
P. 62
—Who was the guy?
—I have literally zero idea.
The beggar’s voice was changing stereo position, as if he or I had
been moving around. I could hear my own breathing, labored and
uneven, as if I were agitated or making a physical effort, but I wasn’t
saying anything. A man was shouting at me in the street and I wasn’t
responding at all.
—You know who that was, right?
Carter sounded as if he expected an answer.
—Some old guy. I have no clue.
I remembered the first part, the amusing part, the shuffling, the
pitch.
—Hey man hey brother? You don’t hear his voice?
I knew what he meant. The very idea was frightening. But why
couldn’t I remember the rest? How could my mind have erased
something so intense and dramatic?
—Carter. It wasn’t the same guy.
—What did he look like?
—This was an old guy, an older guy. I’m telling you it wasn’t the
same person.
But in spite of myself, I started thinking: Seth, you didn’t see his
face, you can’t remember his face. There was something avaricious in
Carter’s eyes. It was as if he thought I was deliberately keeping some
nugget from him, a piece of valuable information.
—So what about our Vanilla Ice tune?
The way he changed the subject felt tactical. He was throwing me a
bone.
—Come on, Carter.
—What? You’ve been working to meet the important deadline for
MC Snowy Snow. Let’s hear it.
—Don’t call him that. Don’t mock him while we’re working with
him.
—Fuck does it matter when I mock him? Let’s hear it.
White Tears - Hari KunzruHari Kunzru / text
P. 63
We sat on swivel chairs in the control room. The lyrics chugged
nicely along over the big band syncopation. It worked. Carter asked
why I’d kept the bass so far to the front. It sounded too modern. He
wanted to hear more of the clarinet, that would be more authentic. I
agreed enthusiastically with all his suggestions, pleased he was
giving input. I wanted to be less worried than I was. I wanted him to
be thinking about something other than a man playing chess in
Washington Square.
After we’d played the demo a couple of times, he got up from the
desk and collected his things. He had stuff to do, he told me. He
would see me back at the loft. When we opened the door to the
street, I was surprised to find it was dark outside. That wasn’t so
unusual—we often lost track of time in the studio—but just then it
seemed ominous. I needed to feel rooted, to remember things instead
of forgetting them. We stood for a while, smoking and breathing in
the humid air, until Carter’s car pulled up. As he got in, I caught sight
of his expression, an external blankness that wasn’t passivity or
peace or even simple tiredness. It was like a lid on a boiling pan,
masking some spirit-consuming interior battle.
I ran back inside, grabbed the bag that held my recording
equipment, set the alarm and quickly wheeled out my bike. I locked
the door and waited impatiently for the beeps to end. Then I cycled
over the bridge into the city, to Washington Square.
I looked for him through the evening crowds, the people milling
around by the fountain and watching punk kids making chalk
drawings on the flagstones. A bluegrass duo—a girl with a nose ring
who played upright bass and sang, a mullet-haired guitarist—was
busking under the arch. He was not watching them. On one of the
benches near the dog run, a well-dressed man rocked backwards and
forwards, shouting anguished obscenities to himself. I found Carter
by the chess tables, talking to the hustlers. I chose not to approach
him. I wanted to eavesdrop, to hear how he spoke when he thought I
wasn’t there. I’d brought a small parabolic, a professionally made
handheld device, much less cumbersome than my old hacked
satellite dish. I hovered around, far enough away to be discreet,
White Tears - Hari KunzruHari Kunzru / text
P. 64
which was easy enough in the darkness. In this way I picked up
snatches of his conversation. He was throwing twenties at people,
asking if they knew a singer. A chess player who could sing.
—I can sing. Sing anything you want. Show me the money.
—No, this is a particular guy.
—I told you, Imma sing for you. Want to hear me sing?
Two informants. A third.
—Dark skin. Maybe a gold tooth.
—Sure I know the dude. Bring him right to you.
They took the money. None of them came back. Carter waited,
shifting from one foot to another and playing with his hair. Even
from a distance you could tell he was on edge. He looked like he was
trying to score drugs. This neediness worried me. I’d never seen him
like that. He was someone who was careful only to want things, never
to need them. To me, he looked like he was unraveling. I didn’t know
what to do, who to tell. What, in fact, was there to tell? I wanted to go
to him, but I didn’t dare show myself, because then he would know
that I’d been spying on him. In the end, I left him there. I waited up
at home, watching TV in the living area, but he didn’t come back that
night.
For the next few days, I worked on a second rough for the hip hop
star. I was using one of our rarest breaks, an obscure record from a
short-lived Philadelphia label that had cost Carter a pile of money
back when he was still interested in the seventies. By some miracle it
hadn’t been reissued, so for the moment it retained its value. I was
chopping it up with a guitar sample from an equally rare Afrobeat
cassette. The work was absorbing, but it wasn’t enough to keep me
from my thoughts: Leonie, Washington Square, things I had
forgotten, buried things that I ought to remember but couldn’t bring
to mind. One night, just after I’d gone to bed, Carter called me from
the studio and told me he had something I needed to hear. I was
overjoyed that he was working, but also nervous. It was 4 a.m. He
sounded more than usually amped up. I hauled myself out of bed and
cycled over.
White Tears - Hari KunzruHari Kunzru / text
P. 65
The first thing he told me after he unbolted the door was that I
should prepare to cry. He’d cried. He’d been crying for two hours
straight. He told me just to sit and listen—I wouldn’t be the same
after. He turned to the desk, and through the studio speakers came
the sound of a New York street. Traffic, the sound of footsteps. My
footsteps. I quickly recognized Tompkins Square in the East Village. I
could hear barking from the dog run, skaters panhandling by the
benches. He turned up the volume. I heard myself walk past the
skaters into a sort of aural dead zone. The street noise faded, the
dogs too. The only significant signal was the sound of a guitar,
someone fingerpicking in a weird open tuning that made the
instrument seem to wail and moan. It was mesmerizing, the
performance of a musician struggling with inexpressible pain and
loss. The recording was completely clear, unmarred by voices or
traffic. I must have been standing directly in front of the guitarist for
several minutes.
And yet I couldn’t bring to mind his face, or even picture the scene.
—Now, said Carter. Listen to this.
He leaned over the desk and pushed a fader. Suddenly the chess
player’s vocal was laid over the guitar.
Believe I buy a graveyard of my own
Believe I buy me a graveyard of my own
Put my enemies all down in the ground
Put me under a man they call Captain Jack
Put me under a man they call Captain Jack
Wrote his name all down my back
Went to the Captain with my hat in my hand
Went to the Captain with my hat in my hand
Said Captain have mercy on a long time man
Well he look at me and he spit on the ground
White Tears - Hari KunzruHari Kunzru / text
P. 66
He look at me and he spit on the ground
Says I’ll have mercy when I drive you down
Don’t get mad at me woman if I kicks in my sleep
Don’t get mad at me woman if I kicks in my sleep
I may dream things cause your heart to weep
They fit together. In fact they were perfect, as if they were two
halves of a single performance.
—What do you think of that?
What did I think? I was terrified. I felt dizzy. My hands were cold.
If before my fears had been vague and inchoate, now they were
definite. This was a message. Someone or something was addressing
us.
—It’s like—I don’t know what to say. I don’t like it.
—But it sounds real, right?
—Yes. It sounds real.
—So go do your magic.
—What magic?
—Seth at the controls.
—No Carter.
—What are you talking about?
—I can’t. Not on this. I don’t want to work on this.
—Why not?
—What do you want me to do, anyway? Clean it up? It’s pretty
clean already.
—No! Make it dirty. Drown it in hiss. I want it to sound like a
record that’s been sitting under someone’s porch for fifty years.
He wanted me to do it and I couldn’t think of any reason to refuse,
except that it scared me, and that didn’t seem good enough. I tried to
tell him how I felt. I begged, but it was as if he couldn’t hear me. He
kept on bullying me until finally, exhausted by his hectoring, I got to
White Tears - Hari KunzruHari Kunzru / text
P. 67
work. I played it out through a tinny little speaker salvaged from an
old transistor radio, re-recorded it and buried it in crackle. By the
time I’d finished, it sounded like a worn 78, the kind of recording
that only exists in one poor copy, a thread on which time and
memory hang.
Carter was ecstatic. He played it again and again.
—It’s perfect, he kept saying. It’s is the greatest thing we’ve ever
done.
Slip, drop it, and that memory lies in pieces. Smashed,
unrecoverable.
White Tears - Hari KunzruHari Kunzru / text
P. 68
I DIDN’T KNOW Carter had put it on the internet, until he came into
the control room and thrust a laptop in front of me. On the screen
was a page from a file-sharing site, all penis enlargement ads and
animations of girls taking off their tops.
KG 25806 Charlie Shaw Graveyard Blues
Type: Audio > Music
Files: 1
Size: 3.1 MiB (3250585 Bytes)
Tag(s): 78rpm blues oldtime
Uploaded: 20—- 07-01 18:32:41 EST
By: Anan51
Seeders: 12
Leechers: 67
Comments: 27
Info Hash:
699D60E19FBA114E24798C15A588B44687559D0D
Above it was a scan of an authentic-looking label, scuffed and
faded, informing me that the song was vocal with guitar
accompaniment and the disk had been “electrically recorded in the
USA.” The words “Key & Gate” appeared above an image of a pair of
White Tears - Hari KunzruHari Kunzru / text
P. 69
ornamental iron gates, half-open, with a key hovering above them
like a UFO.
—What’s this?
—Look at how many seeds.
—But what is it?
—It’s our tune. The chess player’s blues. I made a label and
everything.
—Right. I see that. Who’s Charlie Shaw?
—Just a name I made up.
—What the fuck, Carter. What are you doing?
—It just came to me. Looks authentic, right? I posted it to a couple
blues sites too. Check out the comments. They’re losing their minds.
Sure enough, in the tiny confines of the prewar blues internet, it
was like someone had dropped a bomb.
Hidden gem!!!
What about the b-side
bw?
bw?
thanks op u rock
WHO POSTED THIS I HAVE TO KNOW
There were even offers to buy the record, sight unseen. One poster
mentioned five thousand dollars. There were inquiries from
Germany, Australia, a badly spelled one from Japan.
—Why would you do this?
—They believe in it. Isn’t that amazing? We made that and they
believe it’s real.
White Tears - Hari KunzruHari Kunzru / text
P. 70
—Is this really a wise idea?
—What do you mean? It’s the best idea! These fuckers think this
music was made in 1928, but actually we made it. We made it, fools!
We made that shit last week! So who’s the expert now? Who knows
the tradition? We do! We own that shit!
Carter was so exultant that I began to get a contact high. Together
we looked at the feverish discussion on the comment boards. It was
amazing. No one had the slightest sense that it wasn’t a genuine
recording. Not only that, but it was being hailed as a masterpiece.
Words like feeling, artistry, classic were being used. Several
collectors were trying to get in touch with Anan51, the account Carter
had used to upload the file. One message caught my attention. The
guy—had to be a guy—sounded like a lunatic, wrote in all caps:
JumpJim at 20—- 07-01 20:11 EST:
WHO SOLD THIS TO YOU DO YOU KNOW WHAT YOU HAVE
DO YOU YOU MUST CONTACT ME !!! IMMEDIATELY!!! VERY
IMPORTANT INFORMATION WE HAVE TO TALK
—Who’s that?
—I don’t know. Some retard. Dude’s posted the same stuff
everywhere I uploaded the song. Every single thread. He’s obsessed.
—What does he actually want?
—How should I know?
He smiled.
—Why don’t you ask him?
—Me?
I tapped out a question.
EVP_Seth at 20—- 07-02 22:32 EST:
what u want JumpJim?
He came back almost at once.
White Tears - Hari KunzruHari Kunzru / text
P. 71
JumpJim at 20—- 07-02 22:34 EST:
WHO ARE YOU
EVP_Seth at 20—- 07-02 22:35 EST:
my record
JumpJim at 20—- 07-02 22:35 EST:
WHERE DID YOU GET IT
EVP_Seth at 20—- 07-02 22:36 EST:
thriftstore pls turn off all caps = shouting
JumpJim at 20—- 07-02 22:36 EST:
SOrry where?
EVP_Seth at 20—- 07-02 22:36 EST:
nyc ftw
JumpJim at 20—- 07-02 22:37 EST:
bullshit I live east side nothing worthwhile in those places since
1950s
EVP_Seth at 20—- 07-02 22:37 EST:
ORLY
JumpJim at 20—- 07-02 22:38 EST:
?
JumpJim at 20—- 07-02 22:39 EST:
dont understand
Carter nudged me away from the keyboard.
EVP_Seth at 20—- 07-02 22:41 EST:
ur such a loser
EVP_Seth at 20—- 07-02 22:41 EST:
White Tears - Hari KunzruHari Kunzru / text
P. 72
such a lil bitch u been pwnd
JumpJim at 20—- 07-02 22:42 EST:
dont understand
Carter started messing with him, claiming to be offended, issuing
ridiculous rap-battle threats. It was dumb, but funny. I began to offer
suggestions.
—Tell him we’re going to find him, fuck him in the ass.
After a few posts JumpJim went offline. I thought we’d frightened
him away, but when I checked out the thread the next day, he’d been
leaving conciliatory messages. He must have been old. It wasn’t so
much that he didn’t understand half of what we said or the weird
mention of thrift store record shopping in the fifties, which had to be
bullshit. He just sounded cranky, irritated by having to type his
questions, like an old man who has given up trying to understand
new things. I almost felt sorry for him. We’d been saying nasty stuff,
how we were going to rip his head off, pull his tongue out a hole in
his throat. We probably went over the top. I posted once more, just
in case.
EVP_Seth at 20—- 07-03 23:11 EST:
you still there JumpJim?
I made coffee. When I came back and refreshed the thread, he was
online.
JumpJim at 20—- 07-03 23:18 EST:
please don’t want to do this on the computer much better talk like
human beings
EVP_Seth at 20—- 07-03 23:19 EST:
what about? you want to buy the record
JumpJim at 20—- 07-03 23:20 EST:
White Tears - Hari KunzruHari Kunzru / text
P. 73
you selling. how much?
EVP_Seth at 20—- 07-03 23:20 EST:
$$$ its rare I want $50k for it.
JumpJim at 20—- 07-03 23:21 EST:
maybe someone will give you that not me though
EVP_Seth at 20—- 07-03 23:22 EST:
so why are we talking
JumpJim at 20—- 07-03 23:23 EST:
what do you know about Charlie Shaw
EVP_Seth at 20—- 07-03 23:23 EST:
not much
JumpJim at 20—- 07-03 23:24 EST:
you got other KG 25 series
This foxed me. I called in Carter and he took over the account,
diving into a conversation about catalog numbers, session dates, the
various qualities of Vocalion, Electrobeam Gennett and Victor
pressings, how Paramount cuts got clearer as the tracks went on, that
kind of thing. Collectors are like dogs. They have to sniff each other’s
scent, establish bona fides.
JumpJim at 20—- 07-04 00:04 EST:
ok so you are not total amateur
EVP_Seth at 20—- 07-04 00:05 EST:
true
JumpJim at 20—- 07-04 00:06 EST
? does it say SJH anywhere on the label anything else
White Tears - Hari KunzruHari Kunzru / text
P. 74
—Carter?
—No idea.
—But he seems convinced by the label.
—I don’t know why. I just found an image on the net and
Photoshopped it.
—Really? I didn’t know you knew how to do that.
—I’m not a moron. Say something or he’ll get bored and go offline.
Answer his question.
EVP_Seth at 20—- 07-04 00:07 EST:
No SJH or anything just serial number keep saying
JumpJim at 20—- 07-04 00:07 EST:
b/w
JumpJim at 20—- 07-04 00:08 EST:
WHAT’S ON THE OTHER SIDE
That, neither of us could answer. Carter shrugged.
—It’s kind of an obvious question, I suppose.
—Should I make it up?
—Give me a moment.
We stalled.
EVP_Seth at 20—- 07-04 00:09 EST:
Do you know what’s on other side?
JumpJim at 20—- 07-04 00:10 EST:
Your record you tell me.
That was stalemate.
—I’m too stoned to think of anything. Tell him we’ll meet him.
—Really?
White Tears - Hari KunzruHari Kunzru / text
P. 75
—Why not?
—Well, you know. The internet. We don’t know anything about
him.
—What’s he going to do to us? Maybe he’ll have records to sell. He
seems to know a lot about Paramount pressings. I’d pay good money
for high-numbered Paramounts, better than he knows.
EVP_Seth at 20—- 07-04 00:11 EST:
Let’s talk
JumpJim at 20—- 07-04 00:11 EST:
Great. Will you bring record
I couldn’t exactly refuse, so I just lied.
EVP_Seth at 20—- 07-04 00:11 EST:
OK
He named an Irish bar on 14th Street, almost at the East River, a
spot I’d never heard of. Streetview showed a windowless joint
wedged between a dry cleaner and a dollar store, the kind of place
you could walk past twenty times and still miss. He wanted to meet
there at eight-thirty in the morning. What kind of bar was open
before nine in the morning? We told him that was too early. He
wanted a morning meeting. He was very insistent. We settled on ten.
JumpJim at 20—- 07-04 00:12 EST:
Deal. Now I will tell you something. Before you posted that song, I
had not heard Charlie Shaw since 1959.
I showed the screen to Carter, who made crazy person circles with
his finger against his temple.
White Tears - Hari KunzruHari Kunzru / text
P. 76
AT NINE THE NEXT MORNING I was showered, dressed and working my
way through a cafetière of strong coffee, trying to stop checking the
time on my phone. Carter still hadn’t come home. Even though he
couldn’t be bothered to make the meeting, I knew he’d be angry if I
missed it, because it was a collecting connection and—as he often
reminded me—there weren’t so many people who were in it at his
level. Maybe fifty worldwide, was his estimate. I don’t know if that
was boasting. He said you couldn’t be choosy about who you dealt
with. People didn’t put together serious collections by being nice and
well adjusted. So I felt obliged to go. I sent him a final where-are-you
text and got on my bike.
It was already hot. I pumped up onto the bridge, standing up on
the pedals and telling myself I had options, promising myself that I
wouldn’t get drawn in to anything. Then I freewheeled down into the
smell of gasoline and uncollected garbage. Delancey Street in
summer: light particulates, the tar spongy at the crosswalks. I turned
north and rode through the projects towards the white chimneys of
the power station. Locking the bike to a street sign on 14th, I chugged
some water, toweled off and changed my shirt, which was soaked in
sweat. I walked along until I found the doorway between the dry
cleaner and the dollar store and stepped down a flight of stairs into
darkness and air-conditioning and a long skinny bar lined with
alcoholics of various ages and professions, steeling themselves to go
outside to smoke.
I was wearing a cap pulled down low over my eyes. My plan was to
blend in and watch for a while before I identified myself, in case
JumpJim looked threatening or insane. I admit I was curious to see
White Tears - Hari KunzruHari Kunzru / text
P. 77
this man who was so convinced by Carter’s fiction. Some loser
collector, no doubt. They all had that look, that basement-dwelling
look. I didn’t know what to have so I ordered bourbon. I didn’t want
a bourbon, it was ten in the morning. The crinkled bills on the
counter, the Irish tchotchkes, the bartender’s halter top and shitty
Chinese character tattoo; the whole place was marinated in sadness.
Ten in the fucking morning. You could feel the furred carpet making
its way up the legs of your stool, seeking to become one with your
ankles.
A candidate came in. Dressed in regular old-guy clothes. Slacks, a
dress shirt, everything comfort fit. Good thick rubber soles on those
sneakers, sir. Good grip. I started the recorder in my pocket,
assuming this was him, but he took a stool and started talking to the
bartender in Russian and I got bored and looked down the row into
the dark colon of the bar only to realize that the guy, the real guy,
had been there all along, watching me from a booth. Shock of white
hair, thick black eyeglasses that scanned as fashion until you checked
the raincoat with the grubby collar, the unpleasant-looking scab on
his forehead. Exactly who I did not want to meet. Very slowly, he
raised an index finger and pointed to me, a gesture like firing a gun.
Carefully positioning a coaster on top of his drink, he eased himself
off the vinyl bench and hobbled my way.
I need a cigarette, he said, and crooked that long nicotine-yellow
finger. Follow. How old was he? Eighty? Older? He looked
embalmed. I got off my stool and we went upstairs. We stood there
on the street watching the traffic, me sweating in the heat, him
wrapped up in his long coat like a man expecting bad weather, a man
prepared for the worst. Certain other peculiarities of dress: hiking
sandals over some kind of orthotic socks, polaroid lenses on the
glasses. In the July sunlight it was like two security gates dropping
down, twin black screens. He procured a tin from his coat pocket,
rolled and lit a cigarette. Then he came right up to me, toe-to-toe like
a boxer, and jabbed the cigarette at my face, holding it between
thumb and forefinger and using it as a pointer. You, he said.
I took a step back. He took one forward.
White Tears - Hari KunzruHari Kunzru / text
P. 78
—I don’t see any record.
It seemed the cigarette had played its part. He flicked it at a
passing dog walker (“fuckin’ yuppies”) and headed back inside. I
followed. I didn’t know what else to do. The carpet in his booth was
sticky underfoot. He pointedly emptied the slush from his glass, his
hands trembling.
—Why don’t you get us two more of these? Then we can talk about
why you didn’t bring the record.
—I’m not sure this place takes cards.
—Young man, I am wrestling with my disappointment.
—Take my drink. I haven’t touched it.
—The hell I will.
Chastened, I went to the bar and bought him a whiskey. He flexed
his hands and cracked his knuckles as I returned to the booth.
—That is more like it. And you are?
I didn’t want to give my real name.
—Dan Smith.
—I just can’t believe you didn’t bring the record, Dan Smith. It is a
blow, I don’t mind saying. It shakes my confidence in you.
—Well, what about my confidence in you?
—Don’t you worry about that. I’m kosher. Genuine certified.
—You haven’t brought any records with you either.
—Whenever did I say I’d bring records? To a bar, are you out of
your mind? Think of the environmental hazards. The stuff they use
to clean these tables is highly alkaline. Put a disk down and
straightaway that’d be the surface gone.
I switched on the recorder in my pocket.
—So you must have a great collection, right?
—Slow down, jitterbug. We’ll get to what I’ve got and what I’ve not
in due time. I’m more concerned with what you got. You do have a
copy, correct? KG 25806, Charlie Shaw, “Graveyard Blues.” You
must have, unless you’re not the one who put it out there. You are
the one with whom I’ve been conversating?
White Tears - Hari KunzruHari Kunzru / text
P. 79
—Yes. I am.
—Good. And you know what you have?
—Sure.
—Sure is not what I would call an encouraging word, son. Sure is
not what you should be, because right now you are out on a limb.
—I have no idea what you’re talking about.
—And that’s not so good either. Not that I can solve anything. I
make no claims for myself. You only have to look at me to know I’m
not a powerful person.
He appraised me again from behind his smudged lenses.
—Oh, I see now. I see how it is. Fuck. He made the word into a
long lizardy croak. You actually have no goddamn clue. That—He
trailed away into a sigh, rubbed his palms wearily over his face. That
is really not encouraging. The name Bly mean anything to you at all?
—No.
—Chester Bly?
—No.
—And you’re supposed to be a goddamn collector?
—Well, to be honest, there’s two of us. There were two of us online.
—And you’re the other one.
—That’s right.
—You’re shitting me.
He banged the table with his fist, suddenly furious.
—So why the fuck am I talking to the other one? Jesus Christ, what
a mess. What a goddamn mess!
—Hey, calm down. I don’t know, OK? I don’t even know why I’m
here. Look, I’m sorry I wasted your time.
I got up to leave. I really did want to leave. He didn’t have anything
for Carter and I needed to be outside in the open air, under the sun.
—Hold on!
He spread his hands, and for a fleeting moment I saw a tell. Of
what, I wasn’t sure. Something about those trembling, beseeching
White Tears - Hari KunzruHari Kunzru / text
P. 80
hands.
—Please. Take a seat. I believe you. You represent whoever you
represent. I’m not here to pry into your business. If you’ve got the
record, you’ll know what I’m talking about. I’m not a powerful man. I
was just a kid who liked to listen to old music.
—Honestly, I’ve got to go. I’m meeting someone.
—Look, I’m not involved, and I don’t want to be. In fact, I’m not a
collector at all anymore. Not the kind of collector who would want
that record. But I do have questions. I’m curious. Surely that’s
forgivable.
—Come on. You want the record.
—Oh no. I’d never want to own that record. No thank you. All I’m
asking is that you sit down and tell me about it. Just for five minutes.
Tell me where you got it. I won’t ask anything personal. I won’t pry
into areas that aren’t my concern. Look, you didn’t even drink your
drink. I’ll get you another. Something different, perhaps? Lyuba’s
piña coladas are famous.
All I wanted was to leave. I knew Carter would press for his joke to
go on as long as possible, to run through as many losers and suckers
as it could, but I didn’t have the heart for it. There seemed no point,
nothing to be gained. What fun was there in messing with a semihomeless old man?
—Look, sir. I’m sorry to say this, but you made a mistake. It’s all a
joke. A hoax. Whatever record you heard back in the day, this wasn’t
it, because my partner and I—we put it together literally last week.
It’s just field recordings and some surface noise. That’s all. I’m sorry,
but you wasted your time.
His pleading expression became a snarl.
—Stop lying to me! I’m trying to help you out here. It’s obvious you
know nothing, less than nothing. What is in play here is highly, and I
mean highly, complex. You may think you’re still moving forward,
right now. You may feel safe.
—I’m sorry. We made it up, the whole thing.
—You’re a bad liar. You’re already slipping, you don’t even know it.
White Tears - Hari KunzruHari Kunzru / text
P. 81
—Look, I’m going to go now, but just in case—do you own and if so
do you wish to sell any high-numbered Paramounts?
—Why?
—My friend wants to buy 12900 and up. He’ll pay for anything in
good condition. That’s the only reason I came.
—This being your partner, the one who is a real collector but sadly
can’t be here with us today? Does your collector friend mean good as
in generically good or specifically good as in G condition or higher on
the VJM scale?
—I have no idea.
—Tell him I have what he wants, many E, even E+. A few
unplayed. Not a complete run but near as makes no difference. Tell
him 13099, Willie Brown, “Window Blues” and “Kicking In My Sleep
Blues.” That’ll get his attention.
—So you have records.
—I have records. Repeat it. I want to check you have it correctly.
—Willie Brown, “Window Blues.”
—13099, Willie Brown, “Window Blues” and “Kicking In My Sleep
Blues”
—13099, Willie Brown, “Window Blues” and “Kicking In My Sleep
Blues”
—But he has to come in person. And he has to bring the Charlie
Shaw record.
—Come where?
—Here. If I’m not around, Lyuba will know where to find me.
I left him in his booth and half-ran up the stairs, back out into the
light.
White Tears - Hari KunzruHari Kunzru / text
P. 82
IT WAS IMPOSSIBLE to get Carter to listen. I tried to describe it, the
bar full of sad morning drinkers, the smudged fingerprints on the
man’s filthy eyeglasses, but the only thing he seemed able to hear
was thirteen thousand ninety-nine Willie Brown. Did the guy really
say thirteen thousand ninety-nine? Yes he did. Definitely that serial
number. Yes, I could prove it. I’d been recording. He wanted to hear
the whole conversation, spinning round impatiently on the control
room chair as I scrolled through, looking for the file. I must have
screwed up, because all I had was some audio I’d made a few days
earlier, out in Queens, walking through one of the cemeteries in
Ridgewood. I was angry at myself for making a mistake. I was usually
very careful.
When I told him I had accidentally deleted the file, Carter had a
tantrum. He threw a pair of headphones at me, then went into the
live room and started kicking over the mic stands. I could see him
shouting on the other side of the glass, his snarling face in
dumbshow. I wondered what he’d taken. The pupils of his eyes were
like saucers. I pushed the button on the control room talkback, so I
could hear.
—Do you even know about that record? Paramount thirteen
thousand ninety-nine. You asshole! No one has that record! There
are no known copies!
I muted him. The same avaricious expression on his face. The
collector asking about Charlie Shaw. The same beseeching hands. He
spent a long time in the live room, much of it lying on the floor, one
arm flung over his face as if he were exhausted or in physical
White Tears - Hari KunzruHari Kunzru / text
P. 83
distress. Later, after he’d calmed down, we started drinking. We took
a bottle of vodka out of the freezer and ordered chips and soda from
a bodega. It was an old routine, one of the ways we reconnected
when things were going wrong. Dogged consumption of alcohol. One
of us always said something, eventually. One of us always broke and
began to talk.
—You don’t understand what that record means. If I had that
record, people would deal with me. I would count for something.
These fuckers are tribal, man. You offer them good money, even
ridiculous money, and some of them still won’t sell to you. It’s like
you have to deserve the music, some shit like that. They’re all old too,
the big ones. Old white dudes. No one who wasn’t already doing it
years ago can get a foot in the door. Tell me, what else has the guy
got? Did he mention any other names?
—Bro, come on. He hasn’t got your Willie Brown record. He hasn’t
got anything. He’s just an old man who lives on his own in a room
that probably smells of piss and cat food. He’s just trying to get you
to go see him.
—Why?
—How the fuck should I know? Because you’re a baby millionaire
and you have money coming out your ass?
—Don’t talk like that.
—He’s just trying to get mixed up in your shit.
—It doesn’t mean he doesn’t have records. You’d be surprised who
has records.
—If it’s not about money, then he wants to hear the great lost
Charlie Shaw, who—just as a reminder—doesn’t exist. He already
thinks we’re holding out on him. He thinks he heard it before, but
obviously he must have heard something else.
—Here’s how it works. He thinks we’ve got something he wants.
That’s leverage. I can at least get in there and hear what he’s got. If
he has mint condition thirteen thousand Paramounts he could easily
be sitting on other stuff. Did he say Gennett to you? Vocalion? Black
Patti?
White Tears - Hari KunzruHari Kunzru / text
P. 84
—You are obsessed.
I started getting ready for bed and he went into his room, leaving
the door half-open. From the record deck, crackle and hiss. A
strident voice singing about That bad man, Stagolee. Later, I saw
him counting money on the bed. Thousands of dollars, stacks of
twenties and fifties zigzagging across the covers. Willie Brown, he
said as I went past in my dressing gown. Thirteen thousand ninetynine. And he gave me the thumbs-up.
Willie Brown, Charlie Shaw. What kind of names were those? Ten
thousand dollars. Fifty thousand dollars. No-names. Scottish or
English or Irish. Common and blank. Names that didn’t match the
voices looming up out of Carter’s records, testifying through the
static.
Early the next morning, still mostly asleep, I went to the bathroom.
Carter’s door was open. The bed hadn’t been slept in. I didn’t know
what time it was. A gray hour just before dawn. It wasn’t anything
out of the ordinary.
White Tears - Hari KunzruHari Kunzru / text
P. 85
MY PHONE SAYS 4:47 A.M. People have been muttering on the other
side of silence, just out of range. Leonie’s name on the screen. It’s
hard to make out what she is saying. She’s sobbing, taking great
gulps of air. Half-asleep, I find myself drifting, wondering how she
got my number, feeling pleased she has it, the thrill of speaking to
her overriding what she’s actually saying. That something has
happened to Carter. Something very bad.
—Where did you say he was?
—The Bronx, the Bronx, why don’t you listen?
—What was he doing in the Bronx?
—How the hell should I know? They took him out of his car and
beat him up.
—I don’t understand. He got carjacked?
—He won’t wake up. He’s unconscious, Seth, I’m not in the city.
I’m in Montauk. You’ve got to go there for me.
She gives me the name of the hospital, or a version of it. I tell her
I’m on my way.
A driver, speaking to some friend or family member in French
creole, punching buttons on the radio, hopping from Naija pop to
light classics to some ranting religious phone-in show. The
streetlights are faint and watery against the lightening sky. I have a
terrible feeling that I’ve missed something, that I ought to know
more than I do. Distracted by his conversation, the driver leaves the
dial between stations, and I ride uptown bathed in static that soon
gives birth to all the other things, the whistles and moans and urgent
whispering. If Marconi was right and certain phenomena persist
White Tears - Hari KunzruHari Kunzru / text
P. 86
through time, then secrets are being told continuously at the edge of
perception. All secrets, always being told.
By the time I get to the hospital, a grim brick slab in the South
Bronx, the sun is up. The scene in the ER is chaos, and it’s hard to
make myself understood. They keep saying they don’t have Carter as
a patient. I insist, until the nurse at the desk tells me that if I keep
bothering her she’ll call security. Finally I phone Leonie, who takes a
long time to answer. Her voice is slow and thick. I wonder if she’s
sedated. They moved him, she tells me. New York Presbyterian. He’s
in surgery. You should have called me, I say, making my voice gentle,
hiding my anger. She does not apologize. I ask if I should go to New
York Presbyterian. Sure, she says. He’d like that. Then she hangs up.
I have to wait thirty minutes for a car, then some drunk takes me
back downtown in a rattling old Crown Victoria that smells of vomit.
By the time I get there the sun is over the horizon and when I phone
Leonie from the hospital lobby, it goes to voicemail. The receptionist
isn’t supposed to give out any information, but I beg and she takes
pity on me, pity on the state I’m in. She can’t tell me much. Carter is
alive, but in critical condition. I push. What happened? Did the
police say what he was doing there? She asks if I’m a journalist. If I’m
a journalist, I will have to leave. A representative of the family has
told her to be on the lookout for the press. She uses that phrase.
Representative of the family.
—My advice, go home, get some sleep. If they want you here,
they’ll let you know.
—Are they here? Is his sister in the building?
—His father and brother, I believe.
I can’t get any more out of her. I keep calling Leonie, but she
doesn’t pick up, so I walk to get coffee, then hang around the lobby.
The receptionist gives me the evil eye, whispering to her colleague.
Finally Corny comes out of the elevator, talking on his phone. He is
not happy to see me.
—What are you doing here?
—How is Carter? Is he OK?
White Tears - Hari KunzruHari Kunzru / text
P. 87
—Look, I don’t have time to go into the details of his condition
with you, Damien. It’s Damien, right? Just hold yourself available.
The police will want to ask you some questions.
—The police?
—My brother was taken from his car and attacked. He has severe
head injuries. Right now he’s having pieces of his skull removed from
his brain. I would say there’s a reason for the police to be involved,
wouldn’t you? Now, could you please step aside? I need to take this
call.
—What’s your problem, Cornelius? Can’t you just talk to me for a
minute? I’m as worried about him as you are.
—You seem to have a very high opinion of yourself. Of your
importance in the scheme of things.
He bustles out of the building, ignoring the receptionist, who is
jabbing a finger at a large “no cellphones” sign on the wall. I’m left
reeling from his hostility, from the disorientating thought of Carter
lying under a green cloth with surgeons peering into his skull. I am a
participant in this, I want to tell him. He’s my best friend. This is my
story too. Out on the street, it seems impossible. People are going
about their business, shopping, heading to work, while Carter is up
there in an operating theater, on the verge of death. This is my story
too. I would shout it out loud, but no one would listen.
White Tears - Hari KunzruHari Kunzru / text
P. 88
HE MUST HAVE STOPPED AT A LIGHT. Maybe someone flagged him
down. They pulled him out of his car and beat him unconscious. The
police had a witness, a woman. Two, possibly three assailants. She
wasn’t sure. They had hammers and a baseball bat. Afterwards they
got into his car and drove away, leaving him there, spread-eagled on
the ground in the middle of the intersection.
Unexpectedly, Leonie hugged me. My body went rigid under her
touch. Her hair smelled of cigarette smoke and burned plastic. She
was swathed in a black shawl, like a Spanish widow. She looked
exhausted. We sat down at a filthy Formica table in a sandwich shop
near the hospital, jostled by impatient office workers as they stood in
line to pay for lunch. I was eye level with some woman’s oversized
bag, which grazed my face every time she turned to talk to her friend.
Leonie’s skin had broken out round her mouth. She had a raw,
uncared-for look.
—Have you seen him?
—He’s out of surgery. They have him in the ICU.
Hunts Point. I’d never even been to Hunts Point. I barely knew
where it was. Why would Carter drive all the way out there? Leonie
spoke so softly that it was hard to hear her over the soundtrack of the
lunchtime rush, top forty radio on little blown-out speakers. I had to
strain to catch her voice, though she was only two feet away.
—She’s a hooker, the witness. The cops think that’s what he was
doing, looking for sex.
—You’re joking.
White Tears - Hari KunzruHari Kunzru / text
P. 89
—I know you’re, like, his sheltered friend, but you have to see how
it looks. Why else would he be in Hunts Point? That’s, like, beyond
the hood. He wouldn’t be stupid enough to try to score on the street
up there. You guys have a number, right? A guy who delivers?
—He was going out to buy records. He had a lot of cash.
—There’s some twenty-four-hour record store in Hunts Point?
—From a guy, a collector. But he doesn’t live up there. He’s in the
East Village.
—How much cash?
—I don’t know. Corny wrote him a check at his party for fifty
thousand dollars.
—Corny did that? You’re sure? As much as that?
—Carter told him it was an investment in the studio.
—What was he thinking?
—I’m not sure I follow.
—Tell me the truth, Seth. I won’t bite your head off. Believe me,
you’d be surprised who uses hookers.
—What truth?
—Is this something the two of you do together, drive up to the
Point and bang crack whores? Is it, I don’t know, part of Carter’s
black thing?
—His what?
—You know what I’m talking about.
—He isn’t some degenerate.
—Yes he is. Just be honest with me. Do you get up to this ghetto
shit with him?
—Of course not. I swear.
Leonie, asking me that question. I felt nauseous. I couldn’t hear
properly. That was the problem. I couldn’t hear.
—Can we please go outside?
She looked up at the people in line, porting their plastic clamshells
of salad. A man was calling out his sandwich order over the
White Tears - Hari KunzruHari Kunzru / text
P. 90
distortion. Pastrami, he was shouting. On a croissant. Leonie picked
up her bag and we left.
I was relieved to be out on the street.
—I want to see him.
—It’s family only, for now, Seth. You understand. I ought to go.
I still felt sick.
—Hold on. How do I get news? No one else will tell me what’s
going on.
—You can call me. Or I’ll call you.
She walked away from me down the street. A ghost in jeans shorts
and a black mantilla. Lost in the dirty white light.
White Tears - Hari KunzruHari Kunzru / text
P. 91
TOXIC 14TH STREET. Gum melted into the sidewalk at the crossings,
volatile hydrocarbons lacing the air. I don’t know what else I can do.
There’s no other move I can make to help Carter, so I’m shouldering
open the door of the bar and stepping down into the darkness, down
where the damned sip their drinks and watch cable sports. The air
conditioner rattles, an insect buzzing that almost drowns the
commentary. Was Carter here last night? Did he sit at the bar or in
one of the booths? Did his eyes take time to get accustomed to the
low light? I squint to pick up a trace of him, some sign on the worn
linoleum floor, reflected in the glazing of the framed fight cards.
—You must know the guy. I was in here with him. Old guy. He said
you mix a good piña colada.
The bartender looks at me balefully and pours a shot of rum over
ice, topping it off with something yellow out of a can. Around me are
people from the Reagan era, warehoused in sweat pants and
sneakers, wreathed in cigarette smoke, drinking themselves to death.
I peer into the darkness. The TV is showing a fight. Hagler’s now
shaking those right hands off, Al. He was stunned a little earlier and
he’s normally a slow starter. I can’t see the collector anywhere. I
decide to wait. It’s what everyone else is doing.
What will I do if he comes? How can I confront him? What would I
even say? I sit through the afternoon, but nothing gets clearer. I keep
ordering Lyuba’s piña coladas. After the first couple, they aren’t bad.
He doesn’t come.
Back outside on the street it’s dark, but the heat hasn’t gone out of
the air. I wait to cross, a little unsteady, staring down at the black
White Tears - Hari KunzruHari Kunzru / text
P. 92
lesions baked into the concrete skin.
White Tears - Hari KunzruHari Kunzru / text
P. 93
MY MIND WAS A JUMBLE. Something bitter and mucoid lay at the back
of my throat. The next thing I really remember was being in bed,
trying to sleep. My phone was buzzing next to my pillow.
Leonie sounded jumpy, wired. I’m outside, she said. In a cab. Can I
come up?
I pulled on shorts and a shirt, buzzed her in. I watched in a sort of
trance as she threw down her bag and flopped on the sofa. It was—I
checked—two in the morning, and Leonie Wallace was in my living
room.
—What have you got to drink?
—Is vodka OK? I don’t think we have wine or anything.
—Vodka is perfect. Sorry to get you out of bed.
—Has something happened?
—No. No, nothing like that. The surgeon says we just have to wait.
I just, you know. I could have taken a pill, but I didn’t feel like taking
a pill. Not right now.
I went to get ice and soda water and we sat, listening to the tiny
clink of the cubes in our glasses. She was wearing the same clothes.
Though the air-conditioning was making little impact on the humid
air in the room, she kept the shawl wrapped tightly around her
shoulders. My head felt terrible. I noticed that she was spattered with
dark gray paint, tiny flecks on her clothes, her face, her bare legs.
—What have you been painting?
—The studio floor.
She saw the look I was giving her.
White Tears - Hari KunzruHari Kunzru / text
P. 94
—Why not? You have a better fucking idea?
She lit a cigarette and breathed deeply, her tension producing a
perceptible body tremor as she exhaled. Still and in continuous
agitated motion.
—Did you see Carter?
She didn’t know how to answer that question.
—Yes.
—How is he?
—Not so good.
I waited for more. She lit another cigarette, topped up her drink.
She fished about in her bag for gum, leaving the cigarette burning on
the edge of the coffee table. Then she began to cry, wedged into a
corner of the sofa, hugging her knees. After a while her strength gave
out and she slumped sideways against me. I transferred the cigarette
to an ashtray, and awkwardly held her, smelling the smoke in her
hair, feeling her back quiver as she cried, uncomfortably aware of her
bra strap under my palm.
After a while she sat up.
—Can I see his room?
So we went in to Carter’s room and climbed up onto his bed,
leaning our backs against the big iron frame. Sitting like that we
could see ourselves in an old full-length mirror Carter had propped
against the wall. The silvering had flaked off, and we were hazy,
flecked with gray, a daguerreotype of two people on a bed. Leonie
Wallace and an orc. What’s all this, she said, indicating Carter’s
steampunk music setup, the brass and vacuum tubes, the polished
walnut box.
—He collects blues records. 78’s. You didn’t know?
—Like fifties, sixties stuff?
—They were generally releasing 45’s by then. I suppose you could
say his focus is on the late twenties and early thirties. More or less
stopping at 1934. A few things later than that. You could say 1941, to
be definitive. Or perhaps 1942. Pearl Harbor.
White Tears - Hari KunzruHari Kunzru / text
P. 95
She looked at me as if I’d spoken to her in binary code. I
understand that my precision amuses people. I just don’t know how
to mitigate it. It takes effort to be vague, to fuzz up your answer so as
not to appear threatening or self-absorbed. I was half-asleep.
Sometimes you just have to talk how you talk.
For my pains, another difficult silence. She lay down for a while
with her face buried in her brother’s pillow. I wondered if she was
crying again, and debated whether it would be appropriate to touch
her, perhaps to stroke her back. At last she rolled over and fumbled
in her bag for something or other which she couldn’t find. She stared
defeatedly at the ceiling.
—OK, I’ll bite. Why 1934?
—You don’t need to ask me questions. I won’t be offended.
—Don’t be like that.
—If you actually want to know, it’s when the best material was
recorded. They introduced electrical recording in the mid-twenties,
which made it easier to reproduce quieter sounds. Fingerpicking
guitar and so forth. You couldn’t record that very well before, when
you had to play into a horn. Then most of the companies doing it got
wiped out by the Depression. So there was only a small window,
really.
—A small window.
—Of time.
—A small window of time. In that case, I suppose you ought to play
me something.
I chose Carter’s pride and joy, Victor 38535, Tommy Johnson’s
“Canned Heat Blues,” recorded in Memphis in August 1928. I slid it
out of its sleeve, feeling the heft of the shellac as I placed it on the
turntable and lowered the needle on its counterweighted tone arm.
Then I sat down beside Leonie. Johnson’s guitar rose up out of the
crackle, followed by his strange, lamenting voice.
Crying mama mama mama
you know canned heat killing me
White Tears - Hari KunzruHari Kunzru / text
P. 96
It flipped up into an uncanny falsetto:
canned heat don’t—
crying babe I’ll never die
The strange high vibration of I and die. I had listened to that
record many times, but it was as if it had never broken my skin. The
air was rent open by the sound; darkness poured in. Babe I’ll never
die, he sang. I’d always heard the line as frightened, the alcoholic
singer afraid of the death he is swallowing: Sterno brand camping
fuel strained through a cloth. But now I heard something else. A
veiled threat. If what I’ve already swallowed doesn’t kill me, nothing
can. You will never be able to stop me, babe. I’ll just keep on coming.
The needle hit the runout groove and I lunged forward, terrified
that it would skate. I didn’t dare turn my head to look at Leonie. Only
when I’d secured the record, sleeved it and returned it to the box did
I finally steal a glance. She seemed agitated, angry.
—That’s it? That’s what he loves?
—I know the sound quality is poor.
—That doesn’t help me.
—I’m sorry.
—It’s the opposite of helpful.
—I’m sorry, I don’t understand.
—Why would he listen to this? It’s so morbid. Everything about it
is dead and buried.
—I didn’t mean to upset you.
She seemed to be making an effort to pull herself together.
—It’s not your fault. I’m just upset. Look, you can go back to bed.
You must be tired, I got you up. I’ll sleep here.
I thought about warning her not to try and play any more records.
Carter’s deck was temperamental and she was more than a little
drunk. But she’d said she hated the music, so I judged that there was
little risk of her damaging anything.
White Tears - Hari KunzruHari Kunzru / text
P. 97
—Really, she said. It’s OK. Go to bed. I’m just going to crash.
—Do you need a towel?
—Sure.
—I’ll just leave it outside your door.
—OK.
Even with the air conditioner on high, the heat that night was
oppressive. As I got ready for bed, I was aware of her presence across
the hallway, asleep so very close at hand. I got up twice. Bathroom
and glass of water. I tossed and turned in a tangle of damp sheets. I
kept my door open, in case she called out.
White Tears - Hari KunzruHari Kunzru / text
P. 98
THE NEXT MORNING I got up early, expecting to have the place to
myself while I tidied. In the kitchen I found Leonie wandering
around in one of Carter’s shirts, eating cereal out of the box. I started
grinding coffee and washing glasses, keeping busy so I didn’t have to
endure the full hormonal shock of her. Leonie Wallace, wearing a
dress shirt and a pair of black cotton underpants. Leonie Wallace’s
legs. Either she was dealing with a hangover or she hadn’t been to
bed. Either way, she was irritable.
—You said he was going to buy records? So what does he spend on
a record? A hundred bucks? Two hundred?
—More. The one I played you last night is worth about four
thousand dollars.
—Four thousand dollars for that?
—More, possibly. Maybe a little less. That’s what he told me he
paid for it. There are forty copies in the world, perhaps not even that
many.
—So he could have taken a lot of money with him?
—I guess. He got fifty thousand dollars from Corny as some sort of
investment in the studio. He told me he was going to spend it on
records.
—Why would he do something so stupid?
—I suppose he doesn’t see it that way.
—Not Carter, Cornelius. What was he thinking, trusting Carty to
hold on to that amount in cash?
White Tears - Hari KunzruHari Kunzru / text
P. 99
—I don’t really understand. It’s not like your brother is ever short
of money.
She gave me a straight look.
—Actually he’s on kind of a tight leash, financially.
—What? Really? It never seems like that.
—Sure, he’s got his allowance, he can buy toys.
She saw that I didn’t understand.
—Seth, Carter’s had a few problems in the past. Maybe you know
about that. He doesn’t make good decisions. We try to avoid
anything which would stress him out.
As I was trying to process this corporate “we,” the doorbell rang.
The entry phone showed two men on the street outside. Ties and
shirtsleeves. One of them held up a badge to the camera.
—Maybe you should put some clothes on. The police are coming
up. Go into the bedroom and I’ll talk to them while you get dressed.
—Relax, Seth.
—But it’s the police. You don’t want them to see you like that.
—This isn’t Saudi Arabia.
Reluctantly, I buzzed them in. Leonie hopped up on the kitchen
counter and struck a centerfold pose, arching one eyebrow
sarcastically at me. They stepped out of the elevator, professional
intruders. I was in a state of sexual panic, aroused and humiliated. It
was too much to bear, the way she made them look at her. One,
maybe both men knew who she was. The shorter one, who looked
Latino, knew for sure. He didn’t take his eyes off her, swiveling left
and right, up and down, checking out her ass, her legs, the shape of
her breasts under the shirt. Helping himself. The taller one, the white
one, was big and doughy, too physically somnolent to really feel her
provocation. He turned to me and said blandly that they needed to
ask some questions about the attack. Sit down, he said. It’ll only take
a few minutes. The Latino detective gave way to autoeroticism,
compulsively stroking his little French beard. Her point made,
Leonie got down from the counter and leaned against the sink, her
arms folded, making no further eye contact with him.
White Tears - Hari KunzruHari Kunzru / text
P. 100
—Miss, said the white cop, glancing balefully at his partner. Why
don’t you finish getting dressed and give us a minute with your
friend?
I thought Leonie was going to say something smart. Instead she
walked away and shut herself in Carter’s room. What could I do but
comply? I sat down at the table and answered their questions. The
short cop was angry with his partner for embarrassing him, so to
compensate he went in hard. Why was Carter at Hunts Point? Did I
realize it was a known haunt of prostitutes? A “known haunt of
prostitutes,” a period phrase, strange out of his mouth. I told them
that Carter didn’t use prostitutes. I basically told them the truth.
They pressed and the short cop raised his voice, maybe for his
partner’s benefit, maybe for Leonie, hiding in the bedroom. When I
told them about the money, they thought they’d made their case. Did
I understand there was a possibility that he was targeted because of
the cash he was carrying? Who knew about it? Cornelius. Leonie.
Who else? I must have mentioned it to someone. I needed to think.
Was his understanding correct that we were in the music business? A
moment of hesitation. We probably socialized with—he hesitated
again, hunting for the delicate term—hip hop guys.
How could I tell them what I really thought? The money wasn’t the
reason it happened. It was bad luck he had it, but whatever happened
to Carter had to do with the song, with the three minutes of darkness
we had released into the world. That’s what I believed, but I had no
justification for it, nothing I could put into words. Just my fear, the
acid knot in my gut that had persisted for days and would not go
away, no matter how much stomach medication I poured on top of it.
—Just to refresh my memory, sir, where were you that night?
—Here.
—All night?
They mentioned phone records, a search of the apartment. I told
them I had nothing to hide.
Just then, Leonie appeared in the living area, dressed for the road,
carrying her bag.
White Tears - Hari KunzruHari Kunzru / text
P. 101
—I’m going now. You should tell them about the guy, Seth. The
record collector guy.
—He’s downtown.
—But you said you thought Carter might have gone to see him.
The detectives looked concerned.
—He intended to visit someone? Sir, I think you need to be more
frank with us.
Leonie left. They made no attempt to stop her. I wondered if they
had instructions not to bother Carter’s family. Reluctantly, I told
them about JumpJim. I said nothing about “Graveyard Blues” or
about the fact that I’d met him. I just said that he was a person
Carter had met on the internet, that in my opinion he had no records
to sell.
—And you think Mr. Wallace may have gone to meet him?
—It’s possible.
—You never found out his name?
—I guess not.
—Or where they were going to meet?
—No.
—We’re going to need access to his laptop, if he had one. We have
his phone. What email system did he use?
They took down details. I told them I couldn’t give them his
possessions without permission from the family. They weren’t happy
about it and the Latino detective went into the hall and made a
phone call. They left, saying they would be back with paperwork.
As soon as they’d gone, I got on my bike and cycled over the bridge
into Manhattan. I don’t know if I was tired. Perhaps I made some
kind of mistake. I took the same route as I’d taken the previous day. I
chained up my bike to the same lamppost. But though I walked that
stretch of 14th Street several times, it seemed confusing and
unfamiliar. Between the dollar store and the dry cleaner, where the
bar ought to have been, was a clinical white space selling frozen
yogurt.
White Tears - Hari KunzruHari Kunzru / text
P. 102
THE LANGUAGE. Blunt force trauma. Bradycardia and hypotension.
Impairment of neurological function secondary to mechanical
impact. They had surrounded Carter with this language, lowered it
over him like a wire cage. Later the police came back with a warrant
to search the apartment. By that time I’d collected anything that had
to do with drugs and thrown it in a dumpster behind a nearby
restaurant. They found the old laptop he used to check and send
mail, and took it away in an evidence bag. After a cursory look at the
walnut box of records, they left it alone.
Then Leonie texted me. If I wanted to see Carter, I should come by
the hospital. She was going over there. She would sneak me in.
It was hard to look at him like that, attached to a ventilator, his
hands a mess of tape and plastic vents and drains. His head was
tightly wrapped in bandages and the few exposed sections of his face
were horribly bruised. Both eyes were closed up, puffed out by fluid.
Plugs of blood-soaked cotton stuffed his nose. Something else had
happened, some indefinable sliding of his features, as if they’d been
smeared, pushed sideways. Sensors were taped to his chest and
clipped to his finger to monitor vital signs. The audio output on the
machine by the bed was turned up high, presumably so staff could
hear alerts when they were outside the room. Inside, the volume was
punishing, the thump and squelch of his amplified heart an
industrial bassline, some other parameter indicated as a highpitched pulse, like a car alarm.
I held his cold hand, stained orange by some kind of antiseptic,
trying not to cry at the sight of the plastic tags circling his thin wrists.
White Tears - Hari KunzruHari Kunzru / text
P. 103
The previous summer, he’d collected festival passes like fluorescent
friendship bracelets. I wanted to play music to him but they said I
couldn’t use my phone, so I sat there, listening to his amplified vital
signs, watching paper scroll out of a plotter onto the floor.
—Did they find his car?
Leonie shook her head. She was leaning over the bed, stroking her
brother’s matted hair.
—I still can’t believe what an ape you were. Going up there in that
stupid fancy car. Bright red. I mean, Carter, come on. You’re
supposed to be the streetwise one.
A nurse passed the door and frowned. Visitors were only allowed
on that floor by special permission.
Carter wants to trust people, I said.
—That’s the trouble. My brother thinks the world is fundamentally
a safe place.
The nurse passed the door again, still scowling. You could see she
was itching to tell us to leave.
Leonie took out her phone and framed herself in a picture with
Carter’s bandaged, swollen head. I must have looked surprised
because she told me not to freak out, she was on airplane mode, she
wasn’t going to short-circuit his defibrillator or whatever. The phone
made its fake shutter sound. I wondered why she wanted the picture.
—We ought to go, I think my mom and dad are going to stop by.
Too late. We met her parents as they were getting out of the
elevator. I recognized her father from photographs, the precise
wedge of gray-blond hair, the prognathous jaw. In person, he had a
particular quality, not exactly visible, the unbreachable membrane of
legal decorum that only politicians or very wealthy men of business
possess, the suggestion that everything he did was correct because he
did it, that your impertinent questions could not touch him, would in
fact only rebound on you. Pictures didn’t convey his raw,
unwholesome physicality. The skin around his jaw was rough and
pocked, as if he’d survived some childhood disease. Above a blunt,
White Tears - Hari KunzruHari Kunzru / text
P. 104
heavy nose, a nose like a ship’s bridge or a gantry, two pale eyes
surveyed me with displeasure.
—Hello Leonie, he said, addressing himself deliberately to his
daughter.
—Hello Daddy.
—Who is this?
—This is Seth, Carter’s roommate.
—I see.
The children had this man’s unholy features sanctified by those of
the mother, a birdlike blonde with an air of startled perfection. How
do you do, she said, just a trace of a southern accent. A limp hand
extended like a sea creature putting out a feeler.
—I’m surprised to find you here, Seth. I’d given instructions to the
staff to let only family members see my son.
Up to that point I’d been holding up OK, but, caught by those eyes,
I lost my nerve. I became hyper-conscious of my baggy board shorts,
the grubby soles of my sockless feet. My right calf began to itch, in a
spot where I had a persistent patch of eczema. No obvious response
to her statement came to mind.
—It’s not the hospital’s fault, mother, said Leonie. I snuck him in.
Don Wallace turned his eye on me.
—Why would she do that for you? Who are you to my son?
Why hadn’t I put on a pair of shoes instead of going out in flipflops?
—Sir, he’s my best friend. I was—I am worried.
Don Wallace carried on looking at me. I couldn’t say he scrutinized
me, because that would imply a level of engagement which simply
was not there. He just rested his eyes on me as he might on any
phenomenon in his visual field—a stone, a spreadsheet. I am often
accused of lacking emotional response. In fact I think that what I
lack is emotional spontaneity. It takes me a while to release my
reaction, for the feeling to bubble up from below. That man was what
people think I am. He made me afraid.
White Tears - Hari KunzruHari Kunzru / text
P. 105
—I didn’t mean to intrude, I said, instantly disgusted by my
cringing tone. I was rolling over, baring my throat.
—And now you’ve seen him, said the mother, in a tone that
suggested I would not be doing so again. A very refined threat. She
must have been the prize of whatever town Don Wallace found her
in. Miss Magnolia, Cotton Queen. Waving at all the little people in
the parade.
Leonie took my arm. I held my breath at her unexpected touch.
—I’m going to walk Seth to the lobby.
We got into the elevator. My calf was on fire and I reached down to
scratch. Leonie was visibly upset, chewing a strand of hair and
scuffing the sole of her sandal against the floor.
—Stupid me, she muttered. Stupid stupid me.
—Why?
—He’s going to get them fired, those nurses.
—Seriously? Your dad can do that?
—I don’t know. Probably. He’s all about consequences. My mother
will make sure he does something.
—I should go back and talk to him. Take responsibility.
—Believe me, that would only make it worse.
I left her in the hospital lobby. Later, she texted me and we got
dinner in Chinatown, silently slurping noodles in a place with wobbly
plastic tables where the lighting turned everything green and a
Cantopop karaoke video played on a screen over our heads. She
didn’t seem to have anywhere to go. I wanted to say to her, where are
your friends? All those people who sit for hours in your apartment?
Where is Marc and his billion-dollar tech company? Like the
previous night, we ended up back at our place, sitting in Carter’s
room and listening to records. I’m leaving baby crying won’t make
me stay. We were crying to make him stay, trying to cast a spell with
our crying. The records were all sending messages, now I had ears to
hear. Crying leaving crying leaving leaving. The hiss and crackle of
worn surfaces, the constant chirping of our phones. Ignored alerts,
word about Carter getting around.
White Tears - Hari KunzruHari Kunzru / text
P. 106
THE FOLLOWING DAY I took a call.
—Hey Seth, it’s Lewis. How have things been?
Fine, I said.
—Look I was so sorry to hear about Carter.
I talked to the guy for a minute, trying to work out who he was. I
agreed that it was terrible. I said I hoped the police would find
whoever attacked him. I ended the call without ever quite working
out who I’d been speaking to.
Just after midnight, Leonie came round again. I’d spent the day
cycling along 14th Street, through the East Village, over to
Washington Square. I was disturbed. Everything was slightly off. It
wasn’t as if the city had changed, exactly. Perhaps my memory was at
fault. Leonie was in party clothes, all hair and heels and bag. Her
hands were a blur of motion as she opened the fridge and made
herself a drink. She knew the whole thing had been a mistake, she
said. What had she been thinking? Her friends had insisted, but it
was such a bad idea. It was hard to follow her train of thought. I
gathered that she’d been to an opening.
—The asshole gallerist went to the bathroom and obviously he
Googled me. I mean what would it cost him to be nice, to
acknowledge my work, the fact that I make work, but he comes back
and all of a sudden he wants to sell me a picture. He’s talking about
how legacies get made early and touching my arm and I want to say I
sent you slides, remember, only last month, why don’t you talk to me
about my slides, and then I flash on Carter lying there with a fucking
tube in his mouth, tubes all in his arms. He’s up there in the ICU and
White Tears - Hari KunzruHari Kunzru / text
P. 107
I’m making nice to this asshole for what? For my career? How sick of
a person am I? Then, well, I just couldn’t anymore. I wasn’t
dramatic. I didn’t raise my voice or throw things around. I just told
him I thought he was a dick. And still everyone behaved like I took a
dump on the floor.
She fought back a sob, swallowed it with a slug of vodka soda. I
was bold enough to put my arms around her for a moment, a friend
to Leonie Wallace, a confidant. She plucked distractedly at the collar
of my shirt and looked up at me with genuine warmth, her eye
makeup running in black streaks down her cheeks. For a brief instant
we were lit up by romance, like a couple in an old movie.
—Let’s go in to his room, she said, a husky note in her voice. We
sat down in our usual places on the bed and she told me the news.
None of it was good. Low scores on the Glasgow Coma Scale.
Elevated intracranial pressure. I held her again. Her head lay on my
chest, her breath moistening the shirt fabric over my collarbone. I
could not grasp what was happening. I was holding Leonie with such
tenderness. Carter was in a coma.
—I think he’s going to die, she said.
She sat up. I tried to compose myself. Then we made more drinks
and listened to Carter’s records and made more drinks again until
she swung her legs down off the bed and sat slumped forward for a
moment, her hair falling over her knees like a damp towel on the
head of a defeated boxer. The covers were a mess of cracker crumbs
and spilled tequila. I checked the records in case there was
something I’d forgotten to re-sleeve or return to the box.
—Gotta piss.
She left the door open. I could hear her urine hitting the toilet
bowl. It’s cliché—the idealistic suitor who can’t believe his lady love
is a human with a body—but I can’t pretend I wasn’t shocked. Again I
felt the mixture of insult and arousal that came from her physical
unselfconsciousness in my presence. I pulled myself off Carter’s bed,
then took my own turn in the bathroom, with the door shut. When I
came out, she was on the phone. I had the feeling that I sometimes
White Tears - Hari KunzruHari Kunzru / text
P. 108
had with Carter, a sort of giddy wonder at being around her in
conditions of such intimacy.
—I’ve decided I want to look at it, she said. You’re coming with me.
—Coming where?
—Where they attacked him. Hunts Point.
—Why do we need to do that? There’s nothing there. If you want to
see it I can show it to you on StreetView.
—Are you his friend?
—Of course I’m his friend.
—Then you should want to face it. To look at it, where it happened.
I didn’t really grasp her logic, but she seemed determined and I
was too drunk to argue. A pattern was emerging in our
communication, a kind of premature ease. I was falling into being for
her what I had been for Carter, the sister a substitute for the brother.
I could tell she was feeling it too, an unearned intimacy. I would
follow where she led, that was already understood. Her phone rang.
—Car’s downstairs.
We got into the elevator, slumping against the walls as it lurched
down.
The driver did not like the idea of going to Hunts Point.
—Why you want? Is no good there.
We gave him a dummy address to put into his GPS, a taquería near
the intersection where Carter had been attacked.
—You get food somewhere else, plenty other places.
Leonie leaned into the gap between the front seats and flashed him
a smile.
—Come on, man. We aren’t going to rob you.
The driver looked angry.
—Maybe you get out my car.
—I got a deal for you. You go off the clock. Just say you rejected the
fare. I’ll give you two hundred cash to take us up there and just drive
around. Two hundred dollars.
White Tears - Hari KunzruHari Kunzru / text
P. 109
—I’m a working man, you know.
—We aren’t going to give you any trouble. Look at us.
—I not say anything, but—
He made an “alcohol” sign, putting a thumb up to his mouth and
drinking.
—It’s cool. We’re cool. I know what you’re thinking. I see how your
mind is working. We won’t throw up in your car. Look, I’ll pay a
hundred up front. OK, I see now I don’t actually have cash, but we
can stop at an ATM.
—A hundred now.
—Just drive us to an ATM. Then another hundred after. All we
want you to do is take us up there, drive us around and take us back
again.
—Sure. OK, miss. Sure.
Once the money was in his pocket, we traveled at speed up the
FDR, past the UN and the stacked lights of the projects on Roosevelt
Island, then slalomed through a tangle of bridges which ejected us
into the Bronx, where I had never once been during my years in New
York. Manhattan, cross-river patches of Brooklyn and Queens: I had
the same reduced geography as all my friends. Hunts Point was
entirely off our map. It was as if Carter had chosen it deliberately for
its remoteness from our white world, a way to force a confrontation.
There is always more to New York. More than you’ve seen or care to
see.
—Sir, is it OK to smoke in your car?
—No.
—Sure. I respect that. That’s fine.
Leonie dropped her cigarettes back into her bag.
—I feel like puking anyway. Ask you a question, Seth? Carter had
been good lately, right?
—Yeah.
—You know what I mean, don’t you? You see him every day.
—Good?
White Tears - Hari KunzruHari Kunzru / text
P. 110
—Chill. Not too hyper.
—He’s been kind of preoccupied.
—About what?
—About a song. I don’t know if you remember, but he played it to
you in the car on the way to Corny’s party.
She looked blank.
—He had it on repeat and you switched it off?
—What kind of a song?
—Something we made. A blues. It probably sounded real, but it
wasn’t.
—What do you mean, it sounded real?
—It honestly doesn’t matter. Carter wanted to make something
that sounded authentic. That sounded genuinely old.
—I have no idea what you’re talking about.
—I think he wanted to show—I don’t know any more. It was
something that got hold of him. I couldn’t understand it.
We came down off the expressway into a bleak streetscape of yards
and lockups. Auto parts, tires, scrap metal. Graffiti throwups on
gates and shutters.
—Slow down, Leonie said to the driver.
Here and there we saw people standing on street corners, young
men, a woman in a mesh dress that showed her underwear, another
woman wearing high boots and leggings, who walked backwards a
few paces as we passed, did a little shimmy. Near the intersection
where Carter had been attacked, someone had parked a flatbed with
dozens of portable toilets strapped to the back.
—We’ll get out here, just up ahead.
The driver wasn’t sure.
—You want get out?
—Just for a moment.
A deathly quiet. Loading bays, a yard with a chain link fence, a
shuttered cash-and-carry.
White Tears - Hari KunzruHari Kunzru / text
P. 111
—Here.
—Remember, there’s another hundred for taking us back.
—OK, but I don’t want wait here very long. This is not a good
place.
We got out. A truck crawled down the street past us, the driver
eyeing Leonie. There was a clunk as our driver locked his doors. I
followed Leonie to the middle of the intersection, into the gathering
silence.
—There’s nothing here.
Without warning, Leonie lay down, stretching out in the middle of
the intersection.
—Don’t do that. Please get up.
She didn’t reply, just lay there with her eyes closed and her arms
by her sides. I knew exactly what she was doing. Being Carter, trying
to feel what he felt, putting herself in his place.
I looked and listened for traffic. Then I saw a glint of light. On the
corner, tucked in by a fencepost, was a candle in a dish, sitting on the
sidewalk next to a bag of rotting fruit. I left Leonie and knelt down in
front of it. It was one of those religious candles sold in bodegas and
botánicas, with a picture of some saint on the side. The place could
not have been more desolate, yet someone had lit it, kept it alight.
Did they do that for Carter? Perhaps shrines just spring up after any
act of violence, anywhere there is some energy that people want to
harness or ward off. For months, a cluster of candles and empty
liquor bottles had marked a patch of wall in our neighborhood where
a teenage boy got shot. Perhaps the candle had nothing to do with
Carter. Perhaps it was none of my business.
Leonie got up and brushed herself down. The driver hesitated
before he let us back in to his car. We drove downtown in silence. I
couldn’t shake the memory of the eerie shrine at the crossroads. I
wanted to talk about something, anything. I wanted to hear Leonie
talk.
—You told me Carter’s not trusted with money.
She nodded. She was fiddling with her phone. I pushed.
White Tears - Hari KunzruHari Kunzru / text
P. 112
—I didn’t know. I mean, I don’t know the background to that.
—You never noticed? Come on. The highs and lows? The bursts of
manic energy?
—I know that he had some kind of diagnosis. When he was a kid.
That your parents sent him to a doctor.
—That’s what he told you? Seth, your friend Carter has episodes.
He finds it hard to keep his shit together, particularly when he’s
under stress. Though apparently it’s been fine lately, since you seem
to have no clue that he’s even sick.
—Not everyone has the same definition of normal.
—Give me a break. There’s a woman he phones, a counselor.
—Is she called Betty?
—I don’t know. Maybe.
—I thought she was his PA.
—Well, she is. But she’s also a licensed psychotherapist. She
authorizes his expenses, keeps him on track. There’s some kind of
trust. Your apartment’s probably owned by that. I know the building
where you have your studio belongs to Corny. He owns that whole
block. Carter had to beg him for it, for, like, two years.
I’d always thought of Carter as the most independent person I
knew. Someone who was truly autonomous, free to follow his desires.
As I heard her talk, something bleak and dark began to draw a grid
over the sky. The flickering candle, the bag of rotten fruit, the new
picture of my fragile, watched-over friend.
I assumed Leonie would direct the car to drop her off home in
TriBeCa, but instead she came back with me, shoving some bills at
the driver and half-tumbling out onto the sidewalk. Once again we
sat on the big iron bed, facing the mirror. We played records. I heard
little hisses and clicks as she smoked. Little intakes of breath.
Make me a pallet on your floor
Make me a pallet on your floor
I make sure your husband never know
White Tears - Hari KunzruHari Kunzru / text
P. 113
Again she slept in her brother’s bed. My door was open all night.
White Tears - Hari KunzruHari Kunzru / text
P. 114
THE FOLLOWING EVENING I was preparing for her to come round. The
loft was clean and tidy. I’d chosen some records I particularly wanted
Leonie to hear. I’d been to a fancy deli in Williamsburg and bought
cold cuts, olives, some Italian cheese.
—Buzz me in.
I unlocked the door and set about opening a bottle of white wine
that I had chilling in the freezer.
—Page Six? You asshole.
I turned round, confused. She was standing in the doorway,
staring at me in disgust.
—You piece of shit.
She looked at the table setting, the neatly arranged dishes of
appetizers.
—What the fuck is this?
—I knew you were coming over.
—You have to be joking. What, you think this is some kind of date?
She said I was no friend to her brother. She called me a series of
vile and hurtful names. She wouldn’t believe that I didn’t understand
what she was talking about, but she waited while I got my laptop and
went online. To my horror, beneath items on a diet guru’s divorce
and a domestic violence charge involving two RnB stars was a post
headed Coma heir “cruising for sex.” What was a young music
producer with a glittering career doing at 3am in the industrial
wasteland of Hunts Point? It was clearly at least partly based on the
conversation I’d had the day before. His roommate claimed…
White Tears - Hari KunzruHari Kunzru / text
P. 115
according to his producing partner…It was picture-bylined Lewis
Carolle, who seemed to be a preppy young black guy in tortoiseshell
glasses and a bow tie.
A gossip columnist. I’d been so stupid. He had seemed to know
everything anyway. Like an idiot, I’d confirmed what must only have
been a rumor. I’d given him his whole story. Leonie didn’t want to
hear my explanation.
—You sleazy bastard.
—I swear I didn’t know he was a journalist.
—Yeah right. Did you still not know when you told him where to
send the check?
—Come on, Leonie. I wouldn’t do that.
—Oh really? You cheap little fuck. How much did you sell my
brother out for? I bet it wasn’t even a thousand bucks.
—That’s not fair.
—If anything changes with Carter, someone will call you. But don’t
call me. I don’t want your number coming up on my screen. You took
advantage of my brother, riding around on his coattails. I won’t let
you do the same to me. So stay the fuck away.
I’m sorry. I never. I didn’t. I wasn’t.
Leonie, I didn’t know.
She walked out and slammed the door, leaving me with my small
plates, my bottle of wine, the fresh linen I had put on Carter’s bed.
In the days after Leonie cut off contact, I underwent a sort of
collapse, like a tower caving in on its foundations. The loft seemed
hollow, cavernous. The pressed tin panels on the high ceilings, the
great round stained glass window that flooded the space with
spiritual light, these features had once seemed magical to me, signs
of my charmed New York life. Now they just looked expensive.
Without Carter, the light was merely an amenity, one that did not
belong to me. I drank and looked at porn. I felt raw and frightened,
my slug underbelly exposed.
White Tears - Hari KunzruHari Kunzru / text
P. 116
The white rapper’s record label was leaving messages. They were
sorry about Carter, but they were on a schedule. Did we have
anything for them to hear, or should they look elsewhere? No, there
was nothing for them to hear. There would never be anything for
them to hear. I knew that. I was hopelessly lost, stunned into
immobility. I spent most of my time in Carter’s room, putting 78’s on
the turntable, sitting on the bed in front of the speakers.
Can’t tell the future, can’t forget the past
Lord it seems like every minute going to be my last
See see rider see what you done done
You made me love you now you trying to put me down
Why had Leonie treated me like that? She was being unfair. I’d
never wanted much, I’d meant no harm. It was worse, somehow, that
she’d let me get so close before pushing me away. I conducted
conversations with her, arguments. I pleaded my case. Sometimes it
was almost as if she were there in my head. Yes, Seth. I understand. I
see what you mean.
Don’t get mad at me woman if I kicks in my sleep
I may dream things cause your heart to weep
White Tears - Hari KunzruHari Kunzru / text
P. 117
I DID NOTHING, or next to nothing. I couldn’t work. I didn’t answer the
phone or go online. I cut myself off from the world. Carter could have
been alive or dead, I had no way of knowing, but I felt we were the
same, each in his own coma, dislocated, floating free. One afternoon
I was asleep in his bed, wrapped up in his antique patchwork quilt.
By the time I heard the thumps and voices, the movers must have
been working for at least an hour.
In that apartment, we put bills and bank statements and anything
else official in the jaws of a stuffed coyote that sat in a corner by the
door. When there were too many envelopes to fit in the coyote’s
mouth, Carter stuffed them into a FedEx box and sent it to Betty. I
never handled anything administrative. In terms of paperwork I was
almost invisible. Perhaps there had been a letter. The state I was in,
even if one had been addressed to me, I probably wouldn’t have
opened it.
I came out to find all the furniture gone from the living area. The
contents of my room were being boxed up by a crew of surly
Russians or Ukrainians, big pale men with unempathic eyes. I
couldn’t get any sense out of them. They shrugged at my questions,
shook negating fingers. No English. They pointed out the boss, who
showed me a work order. He had keys. His instructions were to
empty the place and put everything in storage. I told him he had to
stop and put it all back. I told him to get his guys and leave. It
escalated from there. I don’t remember getting Carter’s bat. I just
found it in my hands. The boss said if I touched him, he’d call the
cops. Go ahead, I said, swinging the bat. Call them. Then I locked
White Tears - Hari KunzruHari Kunzru / text
P. 118
myself in Carter’s room and tried to get Cornelius on the phone. His
assistant said he was unavailable.
The police turned up and shouted at me to open the door. I was
expecting to get arrested, but they didn’t want to get involved. One
actually told me that I had more rights than I thought. My landlord
needed a court order to get me out. He told me to phone a lawyer.
The cops and the movers talked for a while. The movers agreed to
leave.
Finally, I was alone again. Almost everything was gone from the
apartment. Furniture, kitchen equipment. I now occupied an empty
brick box, with dusty boot prints all over the hardwood floor. A wellproportioned bunker. My room had been mostly emptied. Cardboard
boxes were piled in a corner which seemed to contain books and not
much else. My bed was gone, so were most of my clothes. Only
Carter’s room was untouched. I made his bed and generally
straightened things up. His treasure chest of 78’s was still sitting in
its place by the record deck. I phoned a locksmith and gave him
Carter’s credit card number. While he worked, I looked at the small
things that had been left behind on the floor. Restaurant flyers,
paperclips, pennies. It would be hard to reconstruct our life from
such fragments, to know what had been said and done in that space.
I kept trying to reach Cornelius. After the third time, the assistant
told me not to call again. She would be in touch if and when Mr.
Wallace was available to speak to me. She suggested I send an email
detailing “my concerns” and “sit tight” to await a response.
The movers came back a couple of hours later. They banged on the
locked door and cursed at me in their language. After a while they
went away. Only then did it occur to me to think about the studio. I
ran down the stairs and cycled over, arriving drenched in sweat. I
fumbled with the key in the lock. As I had feared, it didn’t work. I
banged on the door with my fists, calling out to Carter, as if it was all
a terrible misunderstanding and he would shamble to the door and
open it up and let me in and everything would be the same again, just
like before.
White Tears - Hari KunzruHari Kunzru / text
P. 119
—CORNELIUS? I’M LOCKED OUT. Yes, that’s right. What? What do you
mean? That’s ridiculous. We have projects, contracts. Yes, I’ve got
proof. Of course I’ve got proof. I don’t understand why you would do
this. Cornelius? Hello?
Please take notice that a judgment has been made in the
above proceeding giving Wallace Magnolia Properties
LLC possession of the premises now occupied by you.
—Surely I have some rights in this situation. That’s not fair. He’s
my friend. I would never. Well, it was a verbal contract. No. Of
course not. That’s completely unreasonable. If I want a what? What?
Of course I don’t want to make a claim against your family. This is
my life we’re talking about. I need to get into that studio.
An order of eviction has been issued empowering the
marshal to remove you and your belongings
—I have nowhere to go. I’m your brother’s best friend. That’s not
true. How can you even say that? I am not. I resent that. No way.
Your problems are not my problems, Cornelius says in his
impermeable voice. The family has been advised that it is unlikely
that Carter will wake from his coma. They see no reason to wait to
put his affairs in order. It’s not the family’s fault that I didn’t respond
to earlier attempts to contact me. If you wish to bring suit, you
should feel free to have your lawyer call mine.
White Tears - Hari KunzruHari Kunzru / text
P. 120
I am unable to separate one thing from another. It all comes at me
in a swirl, a storm. The casual way he says that Carter will never
wake up. The knowledge that I have nothing, that at a stroke he has
taken it all from me. The way he can tell me all this in his
unreachable, impermeable voice.
as provided by law the undersigned will execute such
order of eviction
—Goodbye. Please don’t use this number again.
White Tears - Hari KunzruHari Kunzru / text
P. 121
WITHOUT ACCESS TO THE STUDIO, only two threads connected me to
Carter: his records and a copy of the picture Leonie had taken in the
ICU, the selfie with her bandaged intubated brother. I’d got hold of
her phone one evening while she was in the bathroom and sent it to
myself. Beautiful Carter smashed and punctured, his mouth open for
the ventilator. Back at the empty loft, I pushed his bed against the
door of his room and spent long periods, sometimes hours at a time,
staring at it as I listened to his records. It had a terrible beauty.
Brother and sister in extremis. Carter wired to drips and monitors,
Leonie staring into the lens as if it were the barrel of a gun.
Since my clothes had been taken by the movers, I began to dress in
Carter’s, which fit me well enough: his selvedge denim jeans, his soft
cotton shirts, work boots I padded with two pairs of socks so they
didn’t slip. I packed some of his clothes into a small backpack along
with a few toiletries and some other useful items from his room—a
little hunting knife, a pocket flashlight, forcing myself out of my
prostration to prepare for what I knew would eventually happen. I
locked my bike to a railing at the other end of the block, so I wouldn’t
be left without transport. Then I took the walnut box of records and
moved it to a locker in a nearby storage unit. The varnished wood
was slick in my sweaty hands as I walked to the storage facility, an
old industrial building with bricked-up windows and primarycolored signage facing the street. I focused on the need to be careful,
to be precise in each step, to avoid obstacles, objects on the ground
or uneven paving slabs. Technically this was theft, but I was the only
person who understood the significance of Carter’s collection and I
felt this gave me some kind of moral right of guardianship. Though
White Tears - Hari KunzruHari Kunzru / text
P. 122
the records were worth thousands of dollars, I had no interest in
their market value. They were a vital clue to what was happening to
us, what I had begun to think of as a jinx, a curse that had put Carter
in the hospital and was grinding my own life to powder. If Cornelius
took those records, I would never be able to save his brother. It was
imperative to keep them under my control. I zipped the storage unit
key into a small pocket in the backpack. Every time I went to get
groceries (this was the only reason I left Carter’s room at all during
those days) I took the backpack with me. When Corny’s men finally
broke in and changed the locks, leaving me outside on the street, I
was ready.
As I was trying to fit my key in the door, two men got out of a car
and began walking towards me. I ran, but they didn’t follow. I was on
my own. A bike, a few clothes. The records, though I had nothing to
play them on.
After that, waiting became my life. Waiting outside the hospital
where Carter was being kept, waiting outside Cornelius’s office.
Waiting on the sidewalk outside Leonie’s building, in the basement
bar with the fights playing on the bulbous black-and-white TV. I sat
on a bench in Tompkins Square. I hovered on the corner near the
studio. I slept in various places. It was summer: you could put a
camping mat or some cardboard down on the sidewalk and no one
would bother you, as long as you picked a quiet spot.
I stood on the sidewalk opposite Leonie’s building and waited for
her to come out. I waited outside her building, standing on the
sidewalk. Two hours the first day, three the second, until my feet
hurt and my bladder was swollen full.
At last she came out. So quick, it would have been easy to miss her.
The doorman helped her into a town car, which immediately pulled
away. I got on my bike and followed the big black Lincoln uptown
through heavy traffic. Past Houston it pulled away, disappearing up
Tenth Avenue. I stepped on the pedals, skirting potholes and
bumping over the lips of those giant metal slabs that utility
companies throw down when they’re excavating the road. I was
streaming with sweat by the time I spotted the car in Chelsea, parked
White Tears - Hari KunzruHari Kunzru / text
P. 123
on a block lined with art galleries. I could see Leonie herself, waiting
on the curb in the heat, tenanting a small patch of shade and
smoking a cigarette. I leaned on the handlebars as I watched her,
trying to gulp enough air into my lungs to slow my racing heart. I
could smell the hot stink of my unwashed body, the telltale scent of
the outsider. A second car pulled up and a man got out. I saw the
wavy boyish hair, a pair of dark glasses pushed up into it like a
headband. Marc. So Marc was still in the picture.
A white-walled former warehouse with a sealed concrete floor.
Quickly past the woman at the desk, too preoccupied with her email
to look up. The cavern contained a single row of vast paintings,
monuments of banality, wallpaper patterns stenciled in metal-flake
car paint and fields of dots that on closer inspection turned out to be
candy. I didn’t dare get very close to Leonie and Marc. I didn’t need
to. I had my recorder, my binaurals. The mics in my ears could pick
up her voice.
—It’s very impressive.
Marc said he’d been offered another from the same series, almost
identical. He wasn’t sure the work would hold its value. She told him
she thought it was good. Challenging, yes, but some of the artist’s
best work. He was a friend of hers, in fact. I recognized the name, the
bearded loudmouth who’d insulted her at dinner.
As they left, they walked straight past me, as if I wasn’t there. I
think Leonie genuinely didn’t see me, but I had the sense that
something more was at work, that my ordinary insubstantiality had
intensified. I picked up a short conversation on the sidewalk. Marc
making a half-hearted promise to call Leonie, her telling him he’d
better, trying to sound casual and sassy. You better, she said,
pointing pistol fingers at him, a self-conscious gesture that she held
for a moment, then withdrew. You better call. He drove off and left
her on the sidewalk.
Silence. The phone echoing in the high-ceilinged gallery, sound
waves bouncing off the great big shiny surfaces of the art.
I stepped forward, ready to say please Leonie. I stepped forward in
the gallery, on the sidewalk outside the gallery. Please Leonie, let me
White Tears - Hari KunzruHari Kunzru / text
P. 124
explain. The ringing phone, the shiny paintings. But she got back
into her own car and it pulled away, leaving me alone in my sweat
and stink. After that I drifted through the city on foot, recording.
That was the summer I drifted through the city. Did I already say
that? Everything I saw had a subtle but unmistakable doubleness.
Each pace was reminiscent of some previous pace, not just because I
knew the streets well and had walked them before, though this was
true, but because I’d already taken that particular pace. My present
had somehow gone before me and was already irrevocably in my
past. All the sounds I could hear, slightly amplified and somehow
picked out or defined, were no more than echoes, their presence
freakish, their availability to me as exotic as a radio signal from a
long-ago war.
Each moment, as I lived it, had already been used up. I could not
connect things together. They happened to me, they had already
happened to me. The helix that spans from birth to death, the
unbroken thread of habit and progress that makes a person a person,
a self whole and entire, had become as discontinuous and
insubstantial as a chain of smoke rings.
White Tears - Hari KunzruHari Kunzru / text
P. 125
SO THEN IT WAS EVENING and I was cycling down Avenue A, my heart
racing, the street treacherous and provisional under my tires. Before
or after I saw Leonie and Marc? I could not have said. He crossed in
front of me, the old phantom, running as fast as he could into
Tompkins Square, chased by a gang of punk kids.
I dropped my bike and ran after them, swerving past trash and
piles of building rubble. Up ahead I saw him fall, his black coat
flapping in a momentary gesture of surrender. He curled up as they
swarmed him, kicking, punching, beating him down. As I ran up,
they scattered, a quick flurry that slowed into a saunter with insolent
speed. They didn’t come back for me, just loped away laughing and
high-fiving each other. They had patches on their denim jackets:
Savage Skulls. I looked down at JumpJim, who lay on the ground
groaning and cursing.
—Little fuckers. Snot-nosed bastards.
—You’ve been avoiding me.
When I spoke it seemed to me that I did so without heart or
spontaneity, the words ritual, a recitation of some previous speech. I
helped the battered old crow to stand and he pressed his hands into
his chest and stomach, feeling for damage. A rich meaty smell rose
up off him, and I wondered if, like me, he had nowhere to sleep.
—Why did they do that?
—Broke my fucking ribs.
—You need to go to the ER?
—No, all I want is for you to get me to my front door.
White Tears - Hari KunzruHari Kunzru / text
P. 126
So I was wrong. He had a place. We limped through some kind of
tented encampment, two wretched figures clinging together as we
stumbled through the wreckage. Homeless men sat outside shelters
patched together from tarpaulin and cardboard. A fire was burning
in a trash can. I wondered vaguely what had happened to the dog
run, the primary-colored climbing frames and slides in the newly
opened playground. When I’d last been in the park it was a cheerful,
bustling place. Somehow I had never noticed how many of the
buildings in that neighborhood were empty, burned out.
Secrets are told continuously at the edge of perception. Nothing
ever goes away.
Even injured, JumpJim had a frantic walk, all knees and elbows.
From time to time he threw his arms out in a sort of involuntary
spasm. People gave us space on the sidewalk. We stopped at a
graffiti-covered door, between a bodega and a Chinese takeout.
—OK, you can leave me here.
—I need to talk to you.
—Sorry, but you can see I’m hurt.
—It’ll only take a minute.
—I don’t know you, man.
—Yes you do. It’s about my friend.
—I don’t know you or your friend. Just be on your way. I need to
get to my bed.
—Carter Wallace. You knew who he was, right? A Wallace. The
Wallace Family. You knew how rich he was.
—Let go my arm.
—A minute of your time.
—Just be about your business. I said I don’t know you.
—I’m going to make you fucking talk to me. You saw him, or he
came to see you. About—I don’t know how long ago. Recently.
—I didn’t see anyone. I make a point of it. I don’t get involved in
other people’s business. Look, you’re a witness to what just happened
White Tears - Hari KunzruHari Kunzru / text
P. 127
to me. I was the victim of a vicious and unprovoked assault. You
ought to show more concern. You’re hurting my arm.
—I swear I’ll break it.
—OK, OK. Hold up.
He looked infinitely old and weary.
—No need to push me around. You shouldn’t push people around.
Sick people. You shouldn’t fucking do that, man.
Around me the buildings were in flux. The same buildings, not the
same. Night had fallen and I was surrounded by a city made only of
its cold places, all the basements and alleyways, the airless back
rooms.
—You better come up.
—My friend Carter got attacked. He’s in a coma.
—I don’t know anything about that.
—Really? You don’t know anything at all? He was my best friend.
You understand what I’m saying? My best friend.
—Just come inside the damn building. I’ll talk to you.
JumpJim pushed at the door, which had no lock. I almost tripped
on a broken tile as I stepped inside and as I turned slightly to right
myself, I caught a glimpse of the street, the window of a chic-looking
patisserie, a woman walking a French bulldog, a scene so cosmically
remote from where I was, the dark hallway, the smell of garbage and
the closing door, that my mind found the two things impossible to
reconcile.
The door closed. I picked my way up flights of stairs into a fetid red
darkness, keeping one hand on the wall and listening to JumpJim’s
asthmatic breathing. We groped our way around corners on unlit
landings of uncertain size. On one floor I heard Fania salsa filtering
under a door, on the next there was a smell of fish and the sound of
an argument in what might have been German or Yiddish. The stairs
seemed interminable, the plaster of the wall warm and slightly damp
to the touch, like the hide of some amphibious beast. Though we
were climbing up, I had the illogical sense that I was descending, so
that when, at last, I heard him futzing with a key, it felt to me as if I
White Tears - Hari KunzruHari Kunzru / text
P. 128
had been swallowed by the city, and was somewhere down in its
pulsing, volcanic belly.
He led me into a stifling apartment filled almost to the ceiling with
books and papers. An orange sofa with cigarette burns on the arms, a
sticky rug underfoot. Shelves were fitted on every wall, lining the
vestibule. Those that weren’t overflowing with books, and the front
few inches of those that were, had been filled with small objects
arranged in ranks or groups: netsuke, tarot cards, wind-up toys,
postcards of freeway rest areas. There were old keys and chopstick
rests, painted eggs, swatches of fabric, each collection meticulously
arranged, like letters in some high-level language. He had a gas ring,
a great humming fridge, some kind of murky bathroom. He’d nailed
scarves over the windows. The light was submarine. There was, as far
as I could see, no bed. And no records.
It came to me that I too had been carrying a box of records. I had
been carrying Carter’s box of records, careful not to slip. Where had I
been taking them?
—I sold them all years ago, too dangerous.
He was talking to me. I must have asked him a question.
—Seventy-eights. I see you scanning the shelves. That’s what
you’re looking for. I sold my whole collection. I did keep a few other
things. For example, for example. Aha! You’ll find this interesting
when it comes.
He took off his coat and began to rummage through a pile of
books.
—Damn, where is it? You want tea. I can definitely offer you tea,
while I’m hunting this out.
—But you told me you had a rare Willie Brown record.
—I lied. I don’t have any records. Not a one. Haven’t for years. So
do you want tea or not?
—No.
I felt spent, as if I’d run some kind of strenuous race and now the
only thing left was to come to terms with losing. I slumped down
onto the sofa, which exhaled a barely perceptible breath of dust.
White Tears - Hari KunzruHari Kunzru / text
P. 129
—Just tell me about Carter.
—I really want to find this—ah, here it is!
He brandished a battered little book, covered in red paper, and
began to leaf through it.
—“Musician. To dream you hear one play foretells grief and
sadness. Eight, eleven, eighteen and twenty-three.”
—What?
—Those are your numbers. Eight, eleven, eighteen, twenty-three.
He flipped the cover in my direction. Aunt Sally’s Policy Players’
Dream Book. Some kind of murky woodcut of a woman.
—At least if you played the numbers, you might win a little
something. That’d be a consolation prize, am I right? To tide you
over your feelings of grief and loss?
—This is all a joke to you.
—No joke, son. All the wisdom of the ancients is between these
tattered covers.
He threw the book onto a pile and flopped down on a metalframed kitchen chair, gingerly palpating his ribs. I saw that one of his
eyes was red. A large bruise was forming below it. I tried to
remember whether it had been light outside when they were beating
him. I couldn’t hear anything, no street noise, no neighbors. The
place was a womb. A rotten womb.
—I want to know if you met Carter. I think you did. I think you
sold your collection to him.
—You are barking up the wrong tree, son. I sold up years ago,
before you or your friend was even born.
—You’re mixed up in this, whatever is happening here. You know
what’s happening.
—Hold your horses.
He made a gesture that incensed me, a sort of soothing pianistic
fluttering of the fingertips, wafted in my direction. As if he were
dispelling me, shooing me back to my place between the pages of his
dusty books. I stood up and balled my fist. I told him that if he didn’t
White Tears - Hari KunzruHari Kunzru / text
P. 130
stop with the games, I would kill him. He scrambled out of the chair
and adopted a fighting stance.
—Don’t threaten me, you little fuck. I know jiujitsu.
We stood there for some time, pantomiming aggression. Then he
adjusted the waistband of his pants and tipped some newspapers off
another chair so he could sit down again.
—He got hurt, you say, your friend? Badly?
—He’s in a coma. How does that sound? Does that make you
happy?
He shrugged noncommittally. I could have strangled him.
—He had a lot of money in cash and I think he came looking for
you. He wanted to buy that Willie Brown record you talked about.
—Thirteen thousand ninety-nine. I only said that so he’d come. I
don’t have that record. Who in the world has that record? It’s a
unicorn. I needed to talk to him, was all.
—Talk to him? You mean get someone to rob him.
—No.
—Carter came here.
—Not here. He came to the bar. And I tried to warn him what he’d
gotten himself into. Look, you’re giving me palpitations, looming
over me like that. I’m not in the best of health. Come on, sit down.
Drink a cup of tea.
—What was it, then? What had he got himself into?
—Sit down.
He looked so pathetic hunched in his chair, quivering, holding his
fists in front of him like tiny baubles. The idea of hurting him seemed
absurd. I sat down. As he pottered about, making tea, I stared at the
sickly yellow-green light filtering through the curtains, willing it to
grow stronger. I wanted the sun to burst through. I wanted to be
bathed in daylight. Once again I tried to tell him how it had
happened. The guy singing in Washington Square, the guitarist in
Tompkins Square. How we sewed the two parts together and made a
song. Shakily, he set two china cups and saucers down on a pile of
White Tears - Hari KunzruHari Kunzru / text
P. 131
encyclopedia volumes that was serving as an occasional table. Then
he sat down on a kitchen chair and took off his glasses, so as to fix
me with a straight look.
—Son, you may think that story’s true. You may have persuaded
yourself it is, but you didn’t make up Charlie Shaw. Charlie Shaw is
real.
—It’s just a name. Carter chose it at random.
—Charlie Shaw chose you, more like.
—You may know some guy called Charlie Shaw. It’s not the same
guy. I’m telling you, this is just bullshit. A misunderstanding about a
name.
—I stepped away from the collecting scene after what happened to
Chester and I don’t want to get back in. It’s not even safe for me to be
talking to you, most probably, but I can’t help myself. I’ll be straight
with you. Cards on the table. I’m curious. Killed the cat, right? But
this thing has been nagging at me for so many years. I only want to
know one piece of information. What’s on the other side? Graveyard
Blues on the A, so what’s on the flip?
—Will you not get it into your head? There’s no flip. There’s no
record. I don’t have any damn record. It’s a .WAV file, if you even
know what one of those is. You probably have it compressed as an
MP3.
—I don’t have it as anything and I can’t honestly say I know what
the hell you’re talking about.
—Just give me your laptop, I’ll show you.
—Laptop?
—Your computer. You have a computer stashed away somewhere
in here.
—Does this look like Bell Laboratories? Be a sport. I’m not even
asking to hear the damn thing, let alone handle it. I just want to
know what’s on the flip. Why is that so hard?
—Because it doesn’t exist.
White Tears - Hari KunzruHari Kunzru / text
P. 132
—What is with you? I know your story. It’s just like mine. I was the
sidekick, same as you. Chester was making all the running. At the
time you feel you’re just going along, am I right? Going along to get
along. Making yourself useful. But Charlie doesn’t care about that.
He doesn’t make those kind of fine distinctions. Which one is the
alpha dog and so on. So why would he want your friend? That’s the
question you ought to be asking. Because it sounds like he got him.
—He was robbed and left for dead in the Bronx. I don’t know why
he would go there or what he was doing. He had no connection to
anyone in that part of town.
—I certainly didn’t send him out to the Bronx. He came to the bar,
showed me a lot of money. I could tell right away the boy was a lost
soul. I’m not a bad man. I tried to talk sense into him, but what can
you say when someone’s like that? When they’ve got the collecting
bug? I’m the same as you. I’m not a powerful person. But I learned
my lesson. I don’t mess with any of it anymore. The boy was angry
that I didn’t have any records. Wouldn’t listen to a word of what I
was trying to tell him, which was get the hell out right now. Same as I
tried to tell you, only you wouldn’t listen either. He kept running his
mouth, saying he’d pay top dollar, did I know who he was, so much
bull crap, I couldn’t follow it all. He even got his cash out on the
table. No street smarts. I mean, anybody could have seen it. Anybody
could have heard, the way he was rambling on.
—So you’re saying someone overheard him at the bar?
—He told me the same stupid story you did. That he’d made up
Charlie Shaw. Wouldn’t listen to a word I said. I told him, Charlie
Shaw wants something from you, and it’s something you probably
don’t want to give. You’ve crossed the line and now you have to
prepare yourself. He just kept on saying catalog numbers.
Paramount this, Okeh that.
—I don’t understand.
—That’s not news to anyone, son. It’s clear to even the most casual
observer that you and your friend are lost in the dark. If you promise
you won’t interrupt, I’ll tell you. And after I tell you I want you to get
the hell out of my apartment, because I barely made it away from
White Tears - Hari KunzruHari Kunzru / text
P. 133
Chester’s mess all those years ago and I’m taking a risk even
speaking the words. You don’t know about Chester Bly. No one does
anymore, though at one time he had a reputation. I’ve seen some
collectors, but I can tell you he was the smartest and the most singleminded of them all. He would not rest until he had what he wanted
in his hands.
White Tears - Hari KunzruHari Kunzru / text
P. 134
THE STORY THE OLD COLLECTOR TOLD ME was so strange that, had I
heard it in any other circumstances, I would have dismissed it as a
fabrication. And yet it had a force—I would say the force of truth, but
that would be too simple. It wasn’t that I believed it or didn’t believe
it, more that it seemed to come from a place beyond belief.
Something had attached itself to Carter and me, some tendril of the
past, and if we did not detach it, we would be drawn back into death
and silence.
The story built up inside me like pressure in a lab vessel. I couldn’t
contain it. But who could I tell? The only person who would possibly
understand was Leonie, and I doubted she would even hear me out. I
used a guest pass to get in to Carter’s gym, where I had a shower and
ripped open the plastic on a fresh tee shirt and a change of
underwear. I combed my hair and made sure my clothes didn’t have
any visible stains. Then I took the records out of storage and waited
outside her building, standing on the sidewalk with the walnut box at
my feet. I hung around for a long time, almost four hours. I was
about to give up when she came out, wearing jeans shorts and one of
Carter’s shirts. At first she walked straight past me.
—Leonie! Leonie!
She wheeled round, startled. She was in a bad state. I couldn’t see
her eyes behind her big dark glasses but her hair was lank and
matted and something in her posture suggested lifelessness, defeat.
—I told you to stay away.
She slipped one hand into her pocket, as if she were about to pull
something out. For a moment I thought she might mace me. I
White Tears - Hari KunzruHari Kunzru / text
P. 135
imagined falling to my knees like a singer, clawing at my eyes. Leonie
standing over me, delivering the coup de grâce.
—Please, Leonie. I wanted to make sure you had these. They’re
fragile. I didn’t know where to take them.
I pointed out the box.
—I could just leave them with the doorman, if you’d prefer.
—So you brought me Carter’s death music. Thanks.
—I didn’t know where else I should take it. They’re valuable. You
should store them properly.
She stared at the box. She didn’t move.
—I don’t want you to think I was going to keep them. I’m not—that
kind of person.
—What kind of person? The kind who’d sell information about my
brother?
—Please Leonie, I thought he was one of his friends.
—Who?
—The journalist. It was an honest mistake.
—So you’re sorry and I should, what? Forgive you?
—I wasn’t thinking. It was stupid of me. I should have remembered
his—your position.
—What do you want, Seth?
—Nothing, I swear. I just don’t want you to think I’m a thief.
—Bullshit. Everyone wants something from us. It’ll save time if you
just tell me.
She lit and smoked a cigarette. I stared at the paving stones.
—You probably want me to go.
Weakly, she waved her hand.
—You’re just going to leave that here? I don’t know if I can even
handle having that shit in my apartment.
—So where should I take them?
—I don’t know. Break them for all I care.
—Break them?
White Tears - Hari KunzruHari Kunzru / text
P. 136
—No, of course not. Fuck it, I suppose you have to bring them up.
Though the doorman offered to take the box, I carried it to her
apartment as carefully as if it were Carter’s own body. To my surprise
she asked if I wanted coffee. I think she didn’t mean to; it was the
sort of social reflex to which she was ordinarily immune. But she
asked, and once I’d said yes, she had to follow through. As she
pushed buttons on her machine, I hovered near the riverside
window, surveying a scene of minor devastation. Ashtrays
improvised out of cups, foil takeout trays and wine bottles on the
floor, a deep scar in the brickwork of one wall.
—Did you have a party?
—Milk? I only have soy. I think there’s some agave in the cupboard
if you want it sweet.
—No thanks.
She handed me a mug. Seeing that I’d noticed the mess in her
apartment, she made a sarcastic face.
—Yes, I had a wild party. Definitely one of the all-time great
nights.
I couldn’t tell from her tone whether she meant that she’d held a
party which had gone badly, or that she’d made the mess herself.
There were mugs and glasses scattered along the windowsills. The
gash in the brickwork looked like it had been done with a power tool,
maybe an angle grinder.
Then we were sitting down opposite each other on two prototypes
of a famous Danish chair, and the silence was building up, the
pressure of my untold story climbing higher and higher. The only
thing I could think of to say was how sorry I was. Again.
—Sure.
She followed my eyeline to the damaged wall.
—My neighbors really love me.
—What did you do?
—I don’t even know. I was upset.
—That sounds bad.
White Tears - Hari KunzruHari Kunzru / text
P. 137
—Yeah?
—So you know Corny had me kicked out.
—I heard.
Her voice was flat. She didn’t say she was sorry or ask where I was
staying. I asked how Carter was doing.
—The same. Exactly the same. They say we shouldn’t get our hopes
up. It’s very unlikely anything will change now. Even if he wakes up…
She trailed off. I thought of Carter in a high room over the city, his
consciousness scattered under the pressure of blood clots and
lesions. I told her I would never be disloyal.
—You mean to my brother?
—And to you. I screwed up, I know it, but in revenge Cornelius has
locked me out of the studio. I don’t care about the apartment. All our
work is in the studio. Our files, all our equipment. I don’t have any
other—we have clients, we’ve signed contracts. You understand,
Leonie? My whole life is in that studio.
—Corny’s very angry. He called it a direct frontal attack on the
family.
—I didn’t take any money, I swear. The guy called me and I picked
up the phone. I just need. How can I put this. If he could let me have
my property, that’s all I ask. My intellectual property.
—Maybe if you got a lawyer.
Her family had most of my possessions, all my equipment, my
tools. I had a couple hundred dollars in a checking account. How
could I afford a lawyer?
—What I’m saying, Seth, is that I really can’t get involved. I can’t
get in between you and Corny.
I asked if I could use her bathroom. On the way there I peeped
round the half-open door of her bedroom. The bed was a midden of
clothes and shoes and other things—Q-tips, an open compact spilling
powder. Bits of broken mirror littered the floor. It looked like Leonie
was sleeping in the living area. Someone had thrown blankets and
pillows onto a couch opposite a big pulldown screen, a little survival
White Tears - Hari KunzruHari Kunzru / text
P. 138
zone haloed in trash. I locked the bathroom door and sat on the
toilet, wondering what to say when I came out. I examined her
toothbrush, the flesh-toned silk robe hanging on a hook on the door.
Inside her medicine cabinet were rows of bottles, containing
vitamins and esoteric supplements. She had prescriptions from a
homeopath, a Chinese herbalist. Capsules of freeze-dried thymus
gland extract, “fortified with herb activators and naturopathically
prepared nutrients for synergistic effect.” Something called turquoise
aromatherapy color energy blend. A cabinet full of charms to ward
off death. I tried to imagine how she must feel to herself as she stood
naked in that marble-tiled bathroom, swallowing pills. Hearing death
come creeping in, slinking round her ankles like a cat.
I took a couple of caps of something called Acetyl-L-Carnitine and
scrutinized myself in the mirror. I barely recognized the haggard face
I saw, its cheeks hollowed out by anxiety, by fear. I knew that if I
didn’t go back out and tell Leonie what JumpJim had told me, then I
would break apart, just vibrate until I shattered.
—I am afraid, I said. I am so afraid.
—What are you afraid of?
Of the sound underlying the other sounds, the suffering rising up
all around me, the mare’s nest of cable I have to untangle if I am
going to find the fault. Of the way the past has hold of Carter. Of my
suspicion that it has a name and a face.
Help Carter, I sobbed. I meant help me.
Leonie help me. I am caught in a riptide. Help me, at least. Carter
is already beyond our reach.
White Tears - Hari KunzruHari Kunzru / text
P. 139
HOW LONG AGO? That doesn’t matter. Far back in time, drowned in
the crackle and hiss. I was nineteen years old, living in a sixth-floor
walk-up in Greenwich Village and working as a messenger at the
New York Herald Tribune, running copy between reporters and
editors in the newsroom of their building on 41st Street. Long gone,
that newsroom, that paper.
I was a jazz fanatic, but I had no time for the modern stuff. No
Miles or Coltrane for me, no bebop, which I called Chinese jazz,
because it was all splintered and broken up. I was what they used to
term a “hot collector,” obsessed with the music of the twenties. To
me that was the real deal, the source and origin. Like every other
dumb kid starting out down that particular road, my god was Bix
Beiderbecke. I didn’t know a thing. On my lunch breaks I’d hang
around at a store in midtown we all knew as Indian Joe’s, digging in
the crates. I’d buy any old crap for eight bars of Bix.
One day, doesn’t matter how, I tumbled to the idea that what I
loved didn’t come from Davenport, Iowa. As my tastes changed, I
started take the subway uptown to Apollo Music at 125th and Lenox,
on the hunt for King Oliver or Louis Armstrong and his Hot Five.
New Orleans became my city, New Orleans and its great founding
myth, the sound of the drummers in Congo Square vibrating through
young Buddy Bolden’s ears and on into the pulse of America. It was
my fantasy to hear Bolden, the one who came before King Oliver and
all the other bandleaders, the one who was never recorded, whose
sound was the missing link to the past. Buddy Bolden, vanished into
the silence. I dreamed of being the one who uncovered, in some
dusty basement or thrift store backroom, a cache of wax cylinders,
White Tears - Hari KunzruHari Kunzru / text
P. 140
my ears the first in fifty years to receive the gift of Bolden’s cornet, its
sweet high tone piercing the veil.
I know that by that time I’d heard some blues—by which I mean
country blues, not commercial female nightclub singers backed by
jazz bands, your Ma Raineys and Mamie Smiths and so forth. What
I’d heard I hadn’t found too interesting. To me, Lead Belly sounded
corny. All that “goddamighty-I-kin-pick-a-bale-o’-cotton” horseshit.
You want the truth, he was still in the pen, metaphorically speaking,
while Lomax père was leading him round those so-called progressive
New York parties. I mean, making him perform in his prison stripes?
The poor bastard was still doing time. Point is I didn’t care about the
blues. Not many collectors did. We were troubled by its lack of
sophistication. You have to remember, a lot of people thought the
worst of the Negro in those days. We thought that kind of rough, lowdown music only served to confirm color prejudice. A lot of Negroes
thought so too, I might add. Church people wouldn’t have it in their
houses.
Anyhow, one Saturday I was loitering by the counter at the Apollo
and one of the clerks put on a Charley Patton Paramount.
Number 12792, “Pony Blues” with “Banty Rooster Blues” on the flip.
You can catch my pony, saddle up my black mare
I’m going to find a rider, baby in the world somewhere
That sound, my God. Like it had come out of the earth. It made my
jazz records seem like child’s play, like people fooling around in the
antechamber, in the vestibule. I asked to hear it again. They sold it to
me for a dollar. That’s how much the Paramounts cost. A dollar
apiece, all new. The Victors were fifty cents. I took it home and
played it twenty times, trying to decipher Patton’s words, to hear
every eccentric phrase he played on his guitar.
Right away I sold every damn Bix and Paul Whiteman I owned. All
I wanted was blues, blues. But the sound I craved wasn’t easy to
come by. Patton, Son House, Willie McTell, Robert Johnson, Willie
Johnson, Skip James, John Hurt…The names were traded by
White Tears - Hari KunzruHari Kunzru / text
P. 141
collectors, but no one seemed to know a thing about them. No
information, not a scrap. They were like ghosts at the edges of
American consciousness. You have to understand, when I say no one
knew, I mean no one. You couldn’t just look something up in a book.
Things were hidden. Things got lost. Musicians got lost.
I subscribed to record collecting magazines. There was Down Beat
and Record Changer. I forget the others. Collectors would run want
lists, mostly for jazz. Their contact details were printed on the inside
cover. There was one guy with a New York address who only wanted
blues, name after name I’d never heard of, recorded on labels I knew
little or nothing about. C Bly, 179 Division Ave, Brooklyn 11, NY.
Sometimes he wrote letters to the editors, correcting some point or
offering additional information. His letters were usually more
interesting than the articles they responded to. I wrote to him, at the
address given, saying very humbly that I was a young collector and
wanted guidance. What should I listen to? What was out there? He
wrote back, enclosing a three-page typewritten list. Its title was
Chester Bly Worthwhile Blues Records April 195—. I corresponded
with him for some months before he mentioned an extraordinary
thing: he also worked at the Herald Tribune. Of all the people in that
warren of a building, the sports reporters and the city reporters and
the compositors and copy takers and the rewrite men and the
columnists and the printers and the drivers who loaded the papers
into their trucks and drove away, we two were the most alike.
The next day I got in to work early, asked round in the newsroom.
Did anyone know a Chester Bly? We smoked in those days. Some
afternoons the newsroom looked as if dry ice was billowing through
it. Rows of men, hunkered down over coffee-stained desks, battering
at ancient typewriters in the haze. These men worked in a slum of
spiked paper and cigarette ash, and I had to run between them,
taking paper from one to another, from writer to editor and back and
forth and over to a sub to write a headline and downstairs to be set. A
monkey could have done it but they had me, and it was hard work.
To get a break, you had to devise strategies, get yourself sent on long
errands, that kind of thing. It was late before I had a moment to
White Tears - Hari KunzruHari Kunzru / text
P. 142
myself, a moment to walk through the haze to the jumble of desks
where the copy editors sat. Mister Bly? A gaunt man looked up at me
from under a green celluloid eyeshade. In front of him was a blank
sheet of paper, and an empty wire basket. Otherwise the desk was
completely clear. That was not normal. I introduced myself. If he was
surprised, he didn’t show it.
—I have a lot of corrections to do, he said, but if you’re available
this evening, perhaps you would care to come by and listen to some
music.
Of all the people in the building, we two were the most alike.
White Tears - Hari KunzruHari Kunzru / text
P. 143
WE RODE THE SUBWAY into Brooklyn, getting out in a neighborhood
I’d never been in before. As I followed him down a block of dingy
tenements, I saw how tall he was, how thin. He was dressed with a
sort of threadbare immaculateness. His suit jacket was shiny at the
shoulders, but still appeared perfectly pressed, even in the heat.
We entered a hostel for single men, of a class just a hair above the
flophouses on the Bowery. No chow line, no dormitory rooms, but
when you opened the front door your nostrils were hooked by that
bread-line smell of urine and disinfectant and the first thing you saw
was a chapel door with some oppressive motto about repentance
written over the lintel. Bly was living in a room like a cell. He had
nothing in there, not a thing but three wooden crates under his bed
filled with records. No pictures, no personal objects. A plate and a
knife and a fork on the dish rack. A pair of metal chairs pushed under
either side of a card table. A turntable, an amp and a speaker. The
man lived like a monk.
He offered me a chair and took the other. We sat, looking over at
the turntable.
—So, he said. What do you want to hear?
—I don’t know, I said. I don’t know what I want to hear.
—Firstly, I’m going to fix up. If you faint easily or have a phobia of
needles, I’m happy to go down the hall to the bathroom.
I’d never seen anyone use narcotics before, never been around it,
but in the moment his reasonable tone carried me. At nineteen, you
can be very accepting, if something is presented to you as normal.
You don’t know, so you pretend you’re experienced, you play along.
White Tears - Hari KunzruHari Kunzru / text
P. 144
He produced a little wooden box, rolled up a sleeve and started to
cook a shot of heroin. He had some sort of medical-looking rubber
tourniquet, which he tied expertly to his upper arm. Chester Bly’s
madness was deep and fast-flowing but he was a very organized man.
I waited for something to happen, something dramatic like in the
“mature adults only” pictures at the Rialto, a spasm, a widening of
the eyes, but he just stared glassily at the turntable. After a pause
that seemed to stretch for hours, he reached into his box and pulled
out a record.
Blues ain’t nothing but a doggone dirty feel
Got no money in your pocket to buy yourself a meal
An amazing record I’d never heard before. Though I begged, he
wouldn’t tell me what it was. I was to find out that this was a habit of
his—to play things but conceal their identity. I was forever squinting
sidelong at spinning labels, hoping in vain to read them.
It was an exquisite record, near mint and as clear as if the
performer was in the room, a guitar blues with a vocal that
occasionally climbed into a tremulous falsetto. It was followed by
other exquisite records, record after record to which Bly listened with
his hands steepled and a frown of concentration on his face. When
each one ended, he whipped round to lift the needle off the platter. It
was as if he snapped out of a trance.
I feel that is very good, he would say. Or, that is a recording of
exceptional quality. Always with this measured judicious tone. And I
would nod. After four hours, I said I needed to go home because I
had work the next day. My head was spinning, round and round,
seventy-eight revolutions per minute, and I was finding it hard to
hold everything in mind, all the things I’d heard, the flow of
recondite facts and opinions. He looked at his watch with an air of
disappointment, and showed me to the door.
White Tears - Hari KunzruHari Kunzru / text
P. 145
WATCHING CHESTER BLY walk in to work the next morning, his jacket
folded over one arm. Watching him in short bursts, as I raced from
desk to desk. Chester Bly coming out of the bathroom with two
wadded handfuls of wet paper towels. Chester Bly bent over his desk,
carefully wiping the surface, the seat of his chair, its back rest, each
of the four wooden legs.
I could not stop to wonder. I had people shouting at me. Copy!
Copy! I had to run. Later, when I brought something to one of his
neighbors, Bly acknowledged me with a barely perceptible nod. That
was as much communication as we had for the rest of the week. I
wondered if I’d failed in some way, if I’d said something gauche,
mixed up Lonnie Johnson with Robert or Tommy or Willie Johnson.
Lonnie Johnson was “molasses,” in Chester’s opinion, along with
more or less anyone who ever played in a nightclub. Molasses was
syrup. It was for the herd. The connoisseur knew the corner was the
place for blues. The corner or the porch.
Chester’s silence was frustrating. I was in orbit, running ellipses
round his immaculately sanitized desk, aware at every moment of my
proximity to—not to Chester Bly himself, but the thing that had hold
of him, the obsession. I was like a child edging closer to a waterfall,
wanting to feel the force of it, to stand beside the thunder and the
spray. At night I would play my music, the few “good” records I had,
and I would listen as hard as I could, but they seemed like minor
pieces of a much larger puzzle, meaningless segments of blue sky. All
I could think of were those boxes under Bly’s bed. Those little
spinning labels, the unreadable text, the hands steepled in a posture
of prayer.
White Tears - Hari KunzruHari Kunzru / text
P. 146
One day he sent me a letter. Instead of calling me over or stopping
me at the watercooler, he chose to write to me at my home address.
No preamble, not much you could call personal. Just a couple of
lines, an invitation to a listening party, to be held in his room the
following Friday.
Five of us were crammed in there. Five collectors, all men. I was
the youngest, Tom and Hal perhaps ten years older. The oldest was
Mr. Pinkus, who didn’t seem to have a first name and was probably
in his sixties. Each one had a specialty, string bands or Scottish reels
or Flamenco or Javanese court gamelan, but each also loved the
blues. None were naturally social, and Chester made no attempt at
hosting, beyond providing the paper cups that we filled and refilled
with cheap California jug wine.
I’ve not seen a second copy of this, Chester would say, pulling out
yet another incredible record, another forgotten performance by a
lost genius.
Laid down last night just trying to take my rest
My mind got to rambling like wild geese in the west
Sometimes, if one of the collectors knew the right question to ask,
Chester would reveal the name. But if pushed, he could push back.
He had a sharp tongue. He kept us in a state of cowed admiration.
Sometimes, one of us would have heard something before, and would
signify his claims with an outward display of appreciation, nodding
or tapping his knee or gesturing with his pipe.
—What is that, Chester? It’s Mississippi, right? It’s got to be
Mississippi.
—Jesus, Tom, if you can’t hear Texas you’ve gone deaf.
—Texas. Right, Texas.
—Yes, Tom, like Chester says. Listen to the guitar figures.
—Pipe down, Pinkus. People are trying to listen.
—Sorry, Chester.
White Tears - Hari KunzruHari Kunzru / text
P. 147
The next week, he invited me again. Some new things had come in
the mail, he said. I didn’t need a second invitation. Bly did not shoot
heroin in front of his other collector friends, but whenever we
listened to music alone, as we began to do at least once or twice a
month, he would fix up at the kitchen table, then brood over his
record boxes for several minutes, caught in whatever was happening
to him, whatever message the drug allowed him to receive. He never
offered heroin to me. It was never even a question. The drug ritual
was no more than a bodily function, just something he did, and I
grew to think of it as a banality. Bly seemed to have no family, no ties
to the world. As he freely admitted, all his spare money went on
music. He owned little else, and lived in the most frugal manner. His
room was always spotless, the kitchen shelf stacked with cans, but
outside the hallway smelled of urine and bacon grease and the
bathroom on his floor was often swimming in dirty water. He didn’t
seem to notice these hardships. It was as if his whole soul was
directed towards the carefully wrapped packages that he picked up,
sometimes daily, from a box at a post office on the next block. I think
this was why he lived in that place, to have the post office close by.
Ten-inch cardboard squares, sandwiched around precious shellac.
Brown paper parcels tied up with string. I wondered if Bly had been
in prison. How else could he make do with so little of the world? By
any standards, I was a serious collector, but he seemed to have
nothing else, no need to go to the park or the movies or walk round a
museum. He was just a vehicle for his obsession, what the Haitians
call a cheval, a mount for the spirits to ride.
I don’t know why I was invited into his solitude. It seemed he
wanted to share something of himself. He told me, for example,
about his filing system. It was his belief that a man could only
properly hold “around four hundred” records in his mind. A
collection should be no larger. He had no time for anyone (which was
almost everyone, as he well knew) who amassed thousands of
records “without regard to quality or importance.” There existed
what he called a golden number. About this number he could grow
quite mystical, but he would never tell me exactly what it was. He
White Tears - Hari KunzruHari Kunzru / text
P. 148
would audition many records, but if he wanted to keep one, another
had to go. Each new star had to deserve its place in the constellation.
It had to be, in a word he always used with great gravity,
“worthwhile.” For me, who found it wrenching to let go of anything,
even music I never listened to and didn’t really like, this was
impressive. Because of it, Bly was constantly buying and selling
records, sometimes stringing together complex deals, acquiring
material in which he had no personal interest to use as bargaining
chips in some drawn-out game with another collector.
He answered my musical questions, but I knew not to ask too
many. It was important to him to keep something in reserve. Some
topics he considered public knowledge, part of every collector’s basic
education. These things he freely told me: how a record lathe
worked, how changing the width of your stylus could draw more
music from a worn disc. Others, he offered in the form of clues or
hints. He had, he said, once met a man who saw Robert Johnson
alive during the war, serving as a cook on board a ship in the Pacific,
but he would say no more about the man, or Johnson’s cooking.
There were certain topics he would only allude to, or rather, there
was a mood in which he would intimate darkly that there were such
topics, “areas of research” he was not prepared to name. There was
some music he’d play and put straight back in its sleeve, refusing to
name the players, refusing to discuss it at all.
—Now, now.
That’s what he’d say if I was forward enough to ask.
Admonishingly, as if I’d brought up something risqué, obscene.
—Why don’t we move on?
White Tears - Hari KunzruHari Kunzru / text
P. 149
ONE AFTERNOON IN THE NEWSROOM, I was taking a break, smoking a
cigarette and listening to some sportswriters argue over who was the
better pitcher, Lefty Gomez or Whitey Ford, when Bly appeared,
looming over me, his eyeshade like a great green beak. There was
something violent about his sudden arrival. The sportswriters could
feel it; they turned away and continued their conversation elsewhere.
Without hello or any other preamble Bly asked if I knew how to
drive. I said yes. He said he too knew how to drive but did not care
for it. He found driving stressful. It was good that I could drive. I
agreed that it was. He looked at his hands for a moment, examining
the nails. So did I think I could get hold of a car?
I asked him where he wanted to go.
—Mississippi.
I suppose I ought to have known something like that was coming.
It was the next step. I could hear the roar, the power coming down.
You have to understand, it was July and hot and they were talking,
we were all talking, in the coffee bars in the Village, in church halls,
in the (inside) pages of our own paper, about The Problem of the
South. They were killing Negro boys down there. Still killing Negro
boys, despite all the so-called advances. Reckless eyeballing was the
name of the crime, and it could get you hung or burned alive or tied
to an engine block and thrown in the river. The NAACP were saying
something had to be done. The White Citizens Councils were
threatening blood and fire. And Chester was proposing to go into
Negro neighborhoods in the Delta and knock on doors to ask if they
had old records. It did not seem wise.
White Tears - Hari KunzruHari Kunzru / text
P. 150
I was not what you would call a political person. There were plenty
around, the earnest folk fans, the gloomy girls with the turtlenecks
and the French books, but I wasn’t part of all that. I couldn’t look
anyone in the eye, let alone speak at a public meeting. Don’t get me
wrong, I believed in civil rights. I thought every man ought to be able
to live his life. But handing out flyers and signing petitions didn’t
seem to make much difference. Sure, I spent all my time listening to
the blues, but one of the reasons I liked those old songs, those
disembodied voices rising up out of the past, was because they were a
refuge from the world. I didn’t want them contaminated by current
affairs. I had no idea what Chester thought about it. He never passed
comment on the condition of the American Negro.
But I also knew I had to say yes. Some things are just fate; you
can’t step out of their path. I told my boss I was taking a week’s
vacation and borrowed a car from an aunt on Long Island. It was an
old wood-paneled Ford wagon, the kind everyone called a “woody.” It
looked like a tool shed on wheels, but it ran OK and the old lady
didn’t mind me borrowing it. I’d drive, Chester would pay for gas,
and we would split other costs. That was our arrangement.
When I picked up Chester from his building, I was surprised to
find him dressed in his suit, as if he was on his way to work. I
thought he was crazy, but as it turned out, like so many things with
Bly, his appearance had been carefully thought through. In the places
we visited, he was often taken for a minister of religion, an
assumption he encouraged by carrying around a large black Bible.
People would address him as Reverend and let him into their houses.
Chester didn’t have much you could call a sense of humor, but he
promoted this deception as a huge prank, a cunning and hilarious
practical joke. He wedged his suitcase in the trunk, alongside a
portable record player and a crate of vanilla seltzer, brought along
because he “didn’t trust the drinking water.”
We drove out of the city, heading south.
White Tears - Hari KunzruHari Kunzru / text
P. 151
WE DRIVE OUT OF THE CITY, heading south, Leonie a passenger in her
own expensive convertible, me running my fingers over the soft
white leather trim on the wheel as the New Jersey Turnpike slides by.
Walnut and lacquer. Adjusting the tone on the eight-track. I’m a
man, yes I am. Crossing into Pennsylvania, then Maryland. The low
sun dazzling me as we barrel into the heat of a long-ago summer
evening.
—So, I say. What do you want to hear?
There is only so long you can feel afraid before something cracks.
We laugh too hard at things that aren’t funny and she tells me
another story about how people don’t see her, just her name. I
understand, I say, as if I too have a famous family name that
obscures my reality as a person. It does not seem important what I
say. I can be as daring as I like. I am in the moment. What surrounds
that moment is fuzzy and I don’t feel like looking at it directly, but I
am inside completely and it is beautiful. This bubble! Our
reconciliation!
How long ago? With each mile we are heading further into the
past. This is what I made her understand, that night in her
apartment. That we had to repeat something, to go back to meet the
force that is reaching out towards us from history.
—It’s the only way.
—The only way to what?
—To save Carter. To save ourselves.
We already did this. We already traveled down this road. Now we
drive on, laughing, forgetful, and only when we pull over do we touch
White Tears - Hari KunzruHari Kunzru / text
P. 152
reality, set foot on the land we are skimming over. Truck stops and
little roadside settlements: post office and diner and general store.
Early in the evening we cross the line into West Virginia and pull in
for dinner at a Chinese buffet restaurant, a great barn off the
highway with Formica tables and steaming metal trays of food. A
family walks in. The man is a peacock, with long hair trailing over his
shoulders, the brim of his camouflage cap carefully shaped. He is
trailed by a stout brown wife and three kids. Down from the
mountain for sweet and sour pork, white people as exotic to me as
any Papuan tribe.
I have been up twice to heap my plate. Leonie is not eating
anything, because of MSG. She has a can of club soda and a straw.
Her mood has darkened. The mountain family sit down at a nearby
table. One of the kids, a little boy of two or three, gets down off his
chair and begins to wander around. Suddenly Leonie buries her head
in her hands. This is her rhythm. For hours at a time she will make
conversation, talk about her friends, movies and books, the things
people talk about. Then for a while she will seem distracted, lost in
her thoughts, and I know that sooner or later it will come—as it does
now—a sudden pang of grief for her brother that racks her body with
convulsions. Electromagnetic grief. Mesmeric grief, raising up her
corpse and dropping it down again. The little boy watches her, the
shoulders lifting, the head thrown back, eyes, mouth and nose
streaming fluid. When it is over, she collapses forwards like a doll.
—What you doing, the little boy asks.
I get up to comfort her but she waves me back to my seat. She
sucks in air, wiping her nose on the sleeve of her shirt.
—Don’t treat me like I’m sick. I’m not sick.
So I drop back onto my chair and we eat. At least, I eat and she
watches me, toying with the straw in her can. The sorrow has passed
like bad weather, leaving a few traces, blotchiness, a redness to her
eyes. She wears an increasingly skeptical expression, the look of
someone who needs to be on her guard.
—You are such a weird guy. That night in my apartment you were
sobbing, but all day you’ve been putting out this whole friendship is
White Tears - Hari KunzruHari Kunzru / text
P. 153
forever vibe. Like we’re on vacation. You were terrified and now all of
a sudden it’s spring break. Do you see how insane that is?
—I just think it’s best we maintain a veneer of normality.
—Normality? Nothing’s normal about this. I believed what you told
me, Seth. I believed you. That you heard a story from a guy about the
record Carter bought.
—He didn’t buy it.
—That he found, then.
—It’s hard to explain.
—Some things can’t be explained, I get it. Stuff has been
happening to me too. I went to see a psychic the other day, to ask
about Carter? She looked at my hand and wouldn’t take my money.
She told me I had to leave. I believe we’re in danger, but you need to
talk to me. You need to tell me what it is you know, otherwise I don’t
see what I’m doing here.
Then it is night, and we are drinking and watching TV in a pinepaneled motel room that smells of lavender disinfectant. I feel knifesharp, hyperauditory. The room is full of tiny harmonics that connect
the wide spectrum hiss of the people next door flushing their toilet to
the irregular snare of the air-conditioning and the long sweep of a
truck passing on the highway, making the bug screens vibrate.
Filaments of order, fleeting hints of meaning. I think about how
different Leonie is from Carter, how I have no money to pay for
anything, not even in a cheap place like this, not gas, not lunch,
nothing, how I have responded by becoming as passive as a baby,
how Leonie is sitting there wearing a flesh-pink kimono and a towel
wrapped round her hair, how the kimono has fallen open to show me
one long bare thigh and her throat is still damp from the shower and
she has only rented one twin room, giving me a world-weary look as
she put down her credit card at the front desk.
—So you’re broke.
At the front desk, in the room. She asks the question
simultaneously in both places, muting the TV and looking over at me
as the receptionist processes her payment. I shrug noncommittally
White Tears - Hari KunzruHari Kunzru / text
P. 154
and pretend I haven’t really heard, buying a few moments to
compose myself, because I’m not sure where I am, when I am,
whether I’m in the room stealing furtive glances at her legs or at the
front desk wishing I had money, wishing I wasn’t being swept along
by events like a twig in a fast-flowing current.
—You don’t have money because my brother was paying for
everything.
I try to concentrate on the TV. A couple is walking through
suburban rooms, dull beige rooms that leave no retinal trace of their
passing. They are accompanied by an orchestral score, a string
section playing minor key stabs, as if something threatening is about
to happen. But it never does and they keep on walking, from room to
room to room.
—Seth.
—No. I don’t have money because your brother’s henchmen locked
me out of my studio which is my only means of making a living.
—Your studio?
—It’s as much mine as his.
—He’s the creative one, not you.
—Is that what he said? He actually said that?
She unmutes the TV. Now it’s her turn to feign interest in it.
—Leonie, did he say that to you?
—Well, isn’t it fair? He told me he was the producer and you were
just the engineer.
—Wow.
—So what? Let me guess, it’s the other way round? You do
everything and my brother’s just a spoiled rich kid, a dilettante?
—Look, Leonie, I know what you think of me.
—That you’re like, his paid best friend? No offense, but I don’t get
it. No one gets it. You don’t have anything in common.
—That’s what you people think.
—Yes, that’s what we people think. We don’t know why he keeps
you around.
White Tears - Hari KunzruHari Kunzru / text
P. 155
—Jesus, I’m not a pet.
—But you’re poor, so he always has to look after you, just like a pet.
Just like I’m doing. Are you talented? You’re obviously clever in an
assholish way but it’s not necessarily the same thing. So what is it?
I’m just being honest. I don’t know you, Seth. You’re right at the
center of my brother’s life, but I have no clue about how you got
there. As far as I can see, you’re nobody.
—Nobody.
—I’m just being honest. What’s your deal, Seth? What do you
actually want?
—I don’t know how I can answer that.
—Why? Why would you not be able to answer? It’s the simplest
question.
—I don’t know. I’m sorry. I suppose I don’t want anything in
particular.
—God, you are always apologizing. One little push and you just roll
over. Put up a fight. Tell me to go to hell.
—I don’t know what you want me to say. I’m just trying to do
what’s right for Carter. What’s the matter?
—What’s the matter? Seriously?
—I mean right now. What’s the matter now?
—And again with the drippy concerned expression. You’re fake,
Seth, that’s what’s the matter. Why don’t you just tell me what you’ve
got going on? You know something you’re not telling. It makes me
nervous.
—I don’t know anything.
—Bullshit. You always try to handle me. We’re in this together—I
don’t know what to call it. This situation. And what I need is for you
to be real with me for one minute. A single minute.
—I genuinely don’t understand what you want. If I did, I’d try to
make an appropriate response.
We watch the television for a while, black-and-white footage of
some kind of protest, firemen playing hoses over people huddled
White Tears - Hari KunzruHari Kunzru / text
P. 156
against the side of a building. Leonie sighs.
—Actually, fuck it. It doesn’t matter anyway.
—Why not?
—I’m saying, it doesn’t matter. Forget about it.
—Why not?
—Because this has all already happened, so logically I must already
know. You get what I’m saying?
—I’m not sure.
—I know you have that feeling, same as me. Don’t tell me you
don’t. I must already know you’re OK, Seth, because otherwise I
wouldn’t have come.
She changes the channel. The TV shows us a police shooting,
yellow incident tape flapping back and forth as a reporter does a
piece to camera, surrounded by a jostling crowd. A woman appears
in the frame. Why would they kill him, she asks. His hands were up.
Leonie says she’s going to sleep. She pulls the covers over herself
and turns out the light by her bed. She puts her phone under her
pillow. She has a panic button on her phone, she says. Press that
button and they will come for her, abseiling out of a clear sky.
White Tears - Hari KunzruHari Kunzru / text
P. 157
WE STAYED IN A HOWARD JOHNSON’S in Virginia, eating an early
dinner in the restaurant. The next morning, Chester banged on my
door at 5 a.m.
—Stop tugging on it! Time to hit the road!
I almost leapt out of my skin.
—What are you sulking for? he asked, as I fumbled with the
ignition key a few short minutes later. I want to put on at least a
hundred miles before breakfast. We’ve got a way to go.
Around eleven that morning we were somewhere south of
Knoxville, Tennessee. Chester pored over a gas station map and
directed me off the highway and over a railway line into an evillooking settlement of shacks and tumbledown cabins. Chicken coops.
Fierce dogs chained up in the yards. Here and there a woman or a
child turned to watch as the woody pitched and yawed its way down
the rutted track. Park up over there, Chester said, and straightened
his tie.
He turned to me, flipping up the polaroid lenses clipped to his
glasses so he could look me in the eye.
—Now listen. Ground rules. There are some records we can
dispute over and some I will let you have for your education, but
there are others about which I will brook no argument. I always take
the lead in any kind of negotiation or sales talk. I will banter and put
at ease. You will not speak, unless spoken to. You do not attempt any
side deals or in any way indicate that you consider any material
valuable or even interesting. That’s the quickest way to screw this up.
White Tears - Hari KunzruHari Kunzru / text
P. 158
Party line is it’s all junk and we’re doing them a favor by taking it off
their hands. Understand?
I nodded.
—Good. So, let’s go see what they have here.
He got out of the car and picked his way through a yard to a shack,
knocking on the door and calling out to see if anyone was at home.
By the time I’d locked the car, he’d already moved on to a second. He
knocked on doors at a furious rate, not waiting for a reply before he
turned away. This was Chester’s idea of efficiency. If he could have
knocked on all the doors simultaneously he would have done so.
When anyone opened up, man, woman or child, he’d give them the
same speech.
—My name is Bly. I’m traveling in these parts, buying and selling,
and I wonder, might I ask if you have any old gramophone records?
Under the porch, maybe? Out back? Give you ten cents for every one
I take.
Rickety doors, barking dogs. No we don’t got nothing like that. No
records. No sir. No. All kinds of people opening doors, but only one
kind of people. Black people. Black people opening doors, white eyes
in black faces, nervous eyes. Two white men on the porch never
meant anything good. I found it hard to meet those eyes.
In a couple of places we did turn up some records. A toothless old
fellow had a few in the drawer of a broken Victrola, sermons and
religious music that Chester declared worthless. Then a woman let us
into her home and showed us a stack a foot high sitting under the
bed. Among a lot of dull military marches was a copy of Okeh 8455,
Blind Lemon Jefferson’s “Black Snake Moan” / “Match Box Blues.”
They had a couple of Bessie Smith Columbias and an unplayablelooking Irene Scruggs. We took the Jefferson and the Smiths. Back in
the car, Chester handed them to me. “They’re not particularly rare,”
he explained, “and I don’t much care for Papa Blind Lemon.”
I was pleased, but also distracted. I had never been inside houses
like that. Little shacks patched together with sheet metal and crating.
Blackened cooking pots hanging over brick fireplaces, pictures from
White Tears - Hari KunzruHari Kunzru / text
P. 159
old calendars pasted up for decoration. I had not thought such places
existed, not in America. Honestly, I hadn’t known.
We drove all day and on into the night, as Chester “wanted to
make time.” He was constantly tuning the radio, hopping from one
station to another. About the only thing he’d stay with were the
religious stations or the ones playing country music. There were
songs I would have listened to, snatches of The Coasters and Fats
Domino swept away in static. We stopped for coffee at a gas station
and he used the bathroom. I think he must have taken a shot because
when he came out, he was a different man, all his nervous kinks
smoothed out. He found a station and stuck with it, though as far as I
could hear, the reedy voice reciting Bible verses was no different
from a dozen others he’d passed over in the hours we’d been on the
road. And one of the company said unto Him, Master, speak to my
brother, that he divide the inheritance with me. And He said unto
him, Man, who made Me a judge or a divider over you?
—Were you in the army, Chester?
—Navy.
—You get to see the world?
—Sure. Keep your eyes on the road.
But God said unto him, Thou fool, this night thy soul shall be
required of thee: then whose shall those things be, which thou hast
provided?
By the time he finally decided we could pull in to a motel, I was
exhausted. I went to bed without eating, the lights of the cars
streaming on behind my closed eyes.
White Tears - Hari KunzruHari Kunzru / text
P. 160
WE WERE IN MISSISSIPPI, driving through rolling hills, then out across
the great flat bottomlands of the Delta. Long straight roads, our old
Ford ghosted by the dust. High cotton. Fields bounded by stands of
hickory and pine. There were signs, Chester said. You could tell the
houses where there were records to be found. Lace curtains, flowers
on the porch, old jugs or oil cans on poles as nest boxes for the
martins. Any sign of old ways or old people. What you wanted was a
place where the same family had lived for years.
Driving down long roads. Long dry roads. Instead of goading me to
make time, Chester began to consult his maps more frequently,
directing me along zigzag routes to small towns, where we’d pass by
neighborhoods of neat clapboard houses into zones of tin roofs and
patched walls and decay, always some line to cross to get there, a
highway or railroad track. Chester, knocking on doors, asking his
monomaniacal question. Got any records? Under your porch,
maybe? Pay a dime a piece.
—I don’t know Rev’nd. Could have.
If there was digging, or lifting, that was my job. Worming under
foundations. Dragging trunks and crates out of sheds and barns,
while Chester made conversation. He would adopt a bantering
manner, laughing loudly, slapping his non-Bible hand against his
chest in counterfeit glee. It went over less well than he thought.
Those old pickers and sharecroppers had seen carpetbaggers in their
time. I watched faces close down as they tried to work out his angle.
They could sense something straining, something violent kept on a
tight leash.
White Tears - Hari KunzruHari Kunzru / text
P. 161
There was something secondhand about the way Chester treated
those people, as if he’d learned it from a manual. He had no real
warmth. But because he was determined, we found records. We
grubbed them up out of the dirt.
We found Columbia 14299, Barbecue Bob “Motherless Chile
Blues” / “Thinkin’ Funny Blues” and Victor 21076 Luke Jordan
“Church Bell Blues” / “Cocaine Blues.” We found Brunswick 7125
Robert Wilkins “That’s No Way to Get Along” / “Alabama Blues” and
Brunswick 7166 Joe Calicott “Fare Thee Well Blues” / “Traveling
Mama Blues.” We had two Pattons, a worn copy of Paramount 12909
“High Water Everywhere Part 1” / “High Water Everywhere Part 2”
and a clean Vocalion 02680, “High Sheriff Blues” / “Stone Pony
Blues.” We had a dozen good commercial female vocals, mostly Ma
Rainey and Ida Cox, as well as a number of country records, which
was a surprise to me, as I’d thought black people had no interest in
the Carter Family or Jimmie Rodgers. Chester was oddly excited by
Okeh 8960, The Memphis Jug Band “Memphis Shakedown” / “Mary
Anna Cut Off,” which he declared he had been hunting for ten years.
We would get to the end of our day, coated in sweat and road dust,
and eat at the counter of whatever diner was nearest our motel,
spooning up mashed potato and guzzling sweet iced tea. Then
Chester would take one of his bathroom breaks. On the road, he
never fixed up in front of me. He was, I think, very worried about the
police. A child could have seen how we stood out, him in his
preacher’s black suit, me in the patterned shirt and cutoffs that made
me look like what I was, a semi-beatnik northern kid. In white
neighborhoods, people stared at us, even more than in black ones.
Sometimes the attention was kindly. Sometimes not.
—Where you from, son?
There was a local way of repeating “New York.” A special curl of
the lip.
When he was floating on his cloud, Chester would lie on whatever
motel room bed under whatever picture—Jesus, a waterfall, dogs
playing poker—and ramble on about wanting to “suck up every damn
record” in some place, the place we were in, a place up the road, a
White Tears - Hari KunzruHari Kunzru / text
P. 162
place we’d been or were planning to go. He wanted to leave nothing
for the next man. That was his oft-repeated vow. It got old quickly. I
would drift off into my own fantasies. Barefoot girls in cotton
dresses. Skinny dipping. Sometimes he would touch on other topics,
talking about records he had, records he wanted, records he thought
ought to be smashed to pieces “to do the world a favor.”
—Actually since you ask there are several lady collectors. I have
corresponded with a Mrs. Levison in San Francisco. A Mrs. Audrey
Levison. She has an interest in polkas. Also Yiddish folk tunes.
Eventually one of us would turn to the portable record player and
play one of our discoveries. Voices, rising up out of the hiss.
They accuse me of forgery: can’t even sign my name
They accuse me of forgery: can’t even sign my name
Accuse me of murder, I never know the man
White Tears - Hari KunzruHari Kunzru / text
P. 163
THIS IS HOW WE CROSS THE LINE. Farms set back from the road. Flat
open country, flatter sky. Signs saying No stopping for next 5 miles
and Do not pick up hitchhikers, then a prison, high blocks visible
beyond a parking lot. I turn my head to read a billboard.
Walxr: Correctional solutions for a multipolar world.
The perimeter flies past, mute gray sheds inside the wire. Leonie
looks over at me, gauging my reaction. You can’t choose where you’re
born, she says, as if she expects me to disagree. You can’t choose
your family. When you say someone’s from something, some place or
group or category. When you say that, what does it even mean?
She talks about guilt, about how her shrink told her that no one
should have to feel guilty all the time.
—My brother feels guilty for being a rich boy. That’s why his
heroes are always poor or black. I told him, it’s not like you’re
helping anyone by listening to music. No one cares if you like black
people.
—He respects the music.
—That doesn’t make them like you any better. It’s theirs. They’d
rather you left it to them. Even if you did something, I don’t know,
really selfless. Black lives matter or whatever. They still wouldn’t like
you.
Then it is night. Leonie navigates the car slowly down a twinkling
strip of lights, semis high-beaming us as we dawdle in the slow lane.
She passes the usual fast-food restaurants, doubling back after a
White Tears - Hari KunzruHari Kunzru / text
P. 164
couple of miles to crawl the other side of the highway. Finally we find
a low-roofed bar sitting like an island in a darkened lot, a place with
a beer sign in the window and scarred wooden booths that hide the
world in a comforting way. We flip over laminated cards and give our
order to a weary middle-aged waitress. When the food comes,
neither of us are hungry for the baskets heaped with chicken and
okra and dessert-sweet slaw.
Leonie rubs her hands over her face, trying to wake herself up.
—I don’t know what I’m doing here. I can’t even remember why I
said yes. I think I want to go home.
—Really? What about Carter?
—What about him? You told me this crazy story and it made sense.
It made sense at the time. Now I don’t know. If you need to stay
down here I’ll drop you somewhere, an airport or a hotel. But I’m
driving back tomorrow. At a certain point it’s just self-care to turn
back when something isn’t really working out, right?
—You’re just going to give up? Just like that?
—Don’t take that tone with me, Seth. He’s my brother, not yours. I
was feeling like shit, and you told me all this stuff about debt, how we
had to go and face up to the past. It seemed wrong that I could just
walk around all day, getting coffee, doing stuff, without thinking of
him. I liked that you had a plan. But now we’re here, it doesn’t make
sense. My whole creative life literally depends on me being
contemporary. This whole scene, this dead musician, this record. It
isn’t what I should be focused on.
She carries on, talking mostly to herself. She’s been taking pictures
of Carter, she says. More shots of the two of them together in the
ICU. She ought to do something with them. They might become a
show.
My silence must convey to her that I’m hurt, because she reaches
forward and squeezes my hand.
—It’s not that I don’t think this is real. I do. But maybe it’s more
real for you. It’s something you had to do for him, not me.
White Tears - Hari KunzruHari Kunzru / text
P. 165
We drive back down the strip, looking for a motel. A string of No
Vacancy signs. The lights come to an end. The night closes around
us. Leonie squints blearily into the darkness, then suddenly she
gasps and hits the brakes. I’m thrown forward in my seat, my face
almost hitting the windshield.
—My God. Did you see that?
—What? I didn’t see anything.
—There was something in front of us, something in the road.
—What?
—I don’t know. A cat maybe. A big black cat.
—I didn’t see anything.
—Fuck. That was so scary.
—You want me to drive?
—Yeah. Yes, you drive. Please. I’m too tired.
We push through the humid night past the epic lights of a chemical
plant, a magic castle glowing over the trees. We are far from any city,
crossing a river that we see only as a darkness through the steel truss
of the bridge. Leonie reclines the passenger seat and closes her eyes.
I have the sense that I am no longer in charge of my life. I know that
none of what I am doing can touch me, not at my core. My memory is
a mystical conspiracy of connections. Everything has already
happened. I am merely a man, sitting in a chair, listening to a
recording made long ago. The needle is traveling in a predetermined
track. Eventually, sooner or later, it will hit the run-out groove at the
end.
White Tears - Hari KunzruHari Kunzru / text
P. 166
THE PATROLMAN STOPPED US as we were leaving Clarksdale, pulling
out of a turning behind us and sounding his siren. We stopped and
waited for him to complete a leisurely inspection of our taillights.
Then he leaned into the window and inspected us. I saw broad
shoulders, a square face mostly obscured by sunglasses and a broadbrimmed hat. I told myself to be cool.
—License and registration.
I handed over my documents. Chester was staring straight ahead,
looking, to my mind, not cool. Looking weird and strung-out and
suspicious.
—What’s your business in this county?
—We’re buying records, sir.
—Records.
—Old records. Race records.
Ten seconds in and I’d blown it. The patrolman held up my New
York State driver’s license like something he’d fished out of a gutter.
—Ask you a question, son. You a believer in equal rights?
Chester leaned across me.
—Absolutely not, officer. I am a private researcher, a musicologist.
This is my assistant.
—Musicologist? That New York for musician?
—No, I collect music. Old Negro folk music. I am associated with
the New York Public Library.
He took out his wallet and handed the man a card. To my horror, it
was just a library card, the kind you’d use to take out a book. I had
White Tears - Hari KunzruHari Kunzru / text
P. 167
one in my own wallet. As the cop examined it, I fixed my eyes on the
steering wheel.
—“Professor C. Bly.” That you?
—Yes.
—And you down here collecting nigger music.
—That is correct.
—OK Professor, I’ll tell you something for free. This is a peaceful
county.
—I quite understand, officer. Let me assure you, I’m a proud
American.
—Well that’s good to hear, but I warn you, don’t go on anyone’s
land, and don’t go talking to their boys less you clear it first.
—As I said. Proud American. I stand with the white man, one
hundred percent.
I stared over at Chester. The patrolman stared at him too. A pause.
He straightened up and slapped the roof of the car.
—Y’all can be on your way. But stay out of neighborhoods like this.
It ain’t safe.
He handed back our documents. Chester pocketed his library card
with an air of satisfaction.
—Drive on, he said.
I don’t think Chester meant a word of it. No one could have loved
that music so much and harbored a speck of racial prejudice. All the
same I felt ashamed. It seemed wrong to have said what he said. For
a moment I wished I really had driven along those bumpy roads to
register people to vote, to tell them they ought to be free. Then
Chester said something about a barrelhouse pianist I was interested
in, name of Cow Cow Davenport, and the feeling slipped away.
White Tears - Hari KunzruHari Kunzru / text
P. 168
WRONG SIDE OF THE TRACKS. Overgrown tracks, a branch of the
railroad that was abandoned years ago, but the geography persists,
the line of convention. The river is invisible behind the steep slope of
the levee, but you can sense it muttering and shrugging on the far
side, looking for a way to spill over and spread itself out across the
land. We ought to be on the road, finding somewhere to stay the
night. Instead we’re in a juke, no more than a shack with crates of
Schlitz beer and Double Cola behind the bar. We have brought a
dead hush to the place, not busy at this early hour.
They have electricity, a bright bare bulb dangling from the ceiling.
According to Chester, electricity has been their undoing. Gleaming in
the corner is what in these parts they call a Seabird, a Seeburg
jukebox, decorated with Cadillac fins and crammed with little plastic
45’s, a monster machine that seems to have landed here from the
future. The Seabird is Chester’s enemy. It has “killed music.” We are
the only white people to have walked in here since the last time it was
raided by the police and now he’s giving the assembly a lecture about
the evil of the Seabird.
—“Select-o-matic.” What is that? Why do you people even have
this thing in here? Goddamn Sam Cooke.
—Come on, Chester.
—You are being corrupted, you know that? Do you know what you
are throwing away?
—Chester. Let’s go.
—Forget this plastic trash. Pick up a fife! A fiddle! Blow over a
damn jug!
White Tears - Hari KunzruHari Kunzru / text
P. 169
The barman, who is perhaps also the owner, nervously smokes a
cigarette. The other patrons, two or three old men, are staring at
Chester, without staring at him. Everyone in here knows that trick.
In this place, in all the places where we knock on doors, they know it.
I always have the sensation of being stared at, but I never meet
anyone’s eye.
White Tears - Hari KunzruHari Kunzru / text
P. 170
AS WE MADE OUR CALLS, I found out that Chester was chasing
information as well as records. Leads, details of the biographies of
certain musicians. If someone had no records, but was willing to talk,
he would run down a list. You heard of a guitar picker, singer, fellow
used to play piano at a barrelhouse off of Sixty-one? Live round here?
Played at dances or picnics? Went to the Mount Zion church? The
names would change, depending on where we were. Kid Bailey. Joe
Reynolds. Willie Brown. Charley Taylor. Calvary, First Baptist, Lamb
of God. Up by the river around Friars Point, he started asking about
Charlie Shaw.
It was the first time I ever heard the name.
Twilight. A few more calls, Chester said. Just one or two. We were
driving on an old rural road. We passed a cabin and stopped to talk
to a man outside working on a truck. When we asked him about
records he said he had none. Chester ran his list of names. Garfield
Akers, Robert Johnson, Charlie Shaw.
—Charlie Shaw, you say?
—Played guitar.
—From around here?
—Would have been about thirty years ago.
—Go on up the road. Ask Miss Alberta, maybe she help you.
He gave us directions, told us to look out for a white porch and a
roof that was all cedar shakes, no tin. The light was failing as we
found the cabin, which was set back from the road under a huge
cottonwood. I switched off the engine and suddenly the night was full
of information, the susurrus of insects closing over me in a great
White Tears - Hari KunzruHari Kunzru / text
P. 171
wave. On the porch burned a kerosene lamp. A little boy, maybe six
or seven years old, scraped a bottleneck along a piece of wire nailed
to one of the uprights. Up and down, a melancholy twang like a Jew’s
harp.
—Evening, son. My name’s Bly. Is your mother home?
The boy just stared at us and carried on playing. Then I saw there
was someone else on the porch, an ancient woman in a rocking chair.
She was made of shadows. I can’t tell you how I knew, because I do
not understand, but shadows were woven into the flowers on her
cotton dress, the scoop of her eye sockets, her toothless jaw. I saw
her and I lost the power of speech. Chester did not seem to see what I
saw, or hear what I heard. That terrible insect war cry, that scraping.
—Good evening, ma’am. My name is Bly. We’re buying up old
gramophone records. I’ll pay you a dime apiece for any we take.
—Ain’t got nothing for sale.
Her voice was like rustling paper, fugitive, near to silence. Chester
put a foot up on the porch and smiled.
—You sure you don’t have anything just hidden away?
—Not interested.
—All right then. I won’t take up more of your valuable time. Just
one last question, please indulge me. Man down the road said you
might know something about Charlie Shaw.
Her silence lasted forever.
—Charlie.
Chester seemed unsure of her meaning. He leaned in.
—Charlie Shaw, a guitar player, from somewhere round here. I
heard he came from along the river, between Rosedale and Friars
Point.
Above his head, insects battered themselves to death against the
glass chimney of the kerosene lamp.
—Boy was a rounder. Always traveling here and there.
Insect static. The crackle and hiss.
—You knew Charlie Shaw?
White Tears - Hari KunzruHari Kunzru / text
P. 172
—Have mercy. He never came back from Jackson.
—Ma’am, I’m interested in all the blues players from round here. It
sounds to me like you knew Charlie Shaw. Did you ever hear him
play?
—Of course I heard him play.
—Where?
—Right here, on this porch. He was my only brother.
Chester’s face in the firelight, transfixed. Chester’s avaricious eyes.
Maybe I dropped off, just for a moment, or maybe I kept dropping
off. My memory is full of holes. From here on there is no logic. The
scenes are out of order. I don’t know how we got inside, whether she
invited us or Chester just wedged his foot in the door. I don’t know
what words were used. Chester was talking all the time, spinning
stories, doing his pastor act. In my memory it’s a series of still
frames. I’m at the car, then I’m on the porch, then I’m inside sitting
on a stool, watching the dust dance in the lamplight. The small room
is full of darkness. It is dense with darkness, stuffed with it like
cotton wool. I scuff my feet on the rough boards and listen to the old
woman talk about her brother Charlie, who went to Jackson and
never came back. Chester has no interest in Jackson. He has a little
leather-bound notebook. He is scribbling with a pencil, asking
questions. What about his repertoire? What songs did he know? Who
taught him to play? Miss Alberta remembers a man called Tommy or
Copperhead, who used to come around. Man who worked the river.
Charlie used to sit with him.
—Do you remember what songs he taught Charlie? Any in
particular you can remember?
—Some. I suppose you want to hear him.
—Hear him?
Oh yes, Chester wants to hear him. The sequence is hard to
untangle. We go inside. I’m sitting on a stool, watching the dust
dance in the lamplight. The small room is dense with darkness. I am
on the porch, under the screaming insects. I am out by the car.
I go inside.
White Tears - Hari KunzruHari Kunzru / text
P. 173
ANOTHER NIGHT. In another motel, indistinguishable from the last, we
lie on a bed looking at our phones. The TV in the room seems like an
old model. Rounded tube, wooden housing, a rabbit-ear antenna
sitting on top. It is showing a musical. Men in blackface makeup are
singing on a riverboat. In spats and tail coats they twirl around. By
the bed is a slot which takes quarters. You put in a coin and the
mattress vibrates.
You put in a coin now. Long ago, you put in a coin. We shared a
joint in the bathroom, blowing the smoke into the air vent.
—So in the morning, you’re turning back.
—Maybe. I don’t know. Is that what I did before? I don’t know
what’s waiting for me in the city. I walk around and there’s always
some guy with one hand on his junk yelling at me like he literally
owns the sidewalk I am walking on and because I won’t talk to him
I’m a bitch and a whore. These guys watching me. And it’s not just
guys. I mean, they could be young or old, male, female. But they’re
all the same. They—none of them—shit, it’s not easy to talk about
this. What I’m saying is it’s never white people.
She exhaled deeply.
—I’m not a racist, Seth. I swear I’m not.
—Of course not. Racists aren’t like—I mean, I know you’re cool.
You know you’re cool.
For a while she talked about healing, a medical NGO she’d
volunteered with in Africa. The people were so poor. The little
children sang a song to her outside their tin-roofed school. The truth,
White Tears - Hari KunzruHari Kunzru / text
P. 174
she said, was that no one knew how to fix anything. People had all
kinds of theories but in the end that’s all they were.
—But it’s as if they’re in communication. The, uh, non-whites. I
know how that sounds. I don’t mean that. It’s hard to explain. It’s
like they all have the same information about me. Like they’ve
formed some kind of opinion and I can’t do anything to change their
minds.
—You feel judged.
—Right. And I resent that. It’s grotesque, actually. They don’t
know me. They don’t know what I’ve been through. I don’t want to
feel like this, Seth. Six months ago I was alive. I can’t even remember
what that was like, to be honest with you. Every day I feel less and
less connected.
—What are we going to do?
—About what?
—All of it. Us.
She looked around sadly.
—You’re too timid to even ask me why we’re renting a double room
in a shitty place like this, but you’re all like “us” as if me and you are
a thing?
She went outside for a cigarette, closing the door to show that I
was not invited to follow. I sat on the edge of the bed, my knees
grazing the bulky air conditioner under the window. I felt shriveled,
shrunken into myself.
She came back in and sat down on the bed.
—I can’t sleep in places like this unless someone’s in the room.
That’s all. You seemed pretty harmless so I thought it was OK. But
you turned out to be a very tense person. You are not relaxing to be
around.
She came back in. She sat down beside me. She had always been
coming back in, sitting down, again and again, forever coming back
in and sitting down. She spoke to me and it was as if she spoke in my
voice. She said she knew what I wanted. She said she’d seen how I
looked at her. I don’t want you, she said, but it’s the quickest way to
White Tears - Hari KunzruHari Kunzru / text
P. 175
end it. Sometimes you’re with a guy and you know you’re the only
door he’ll leave through.
—Do you understand, Seth?
I squinted at the TV screen, pretending I hadn’t heard.
—Take what you want.
She sat down on the bed beside me, again and again, and she
leaned over and kissed me and we began to kiss deeper and suddenly
everything happened always and forever and I was hearing Leonie
Wallace gasp, licking Leonie Wallace’s nipples, the areolae of Leonie
Wallace’s nipples, which turned out to be wide and brown, and I was
brushing my face against a down of hair, smelling Leonie Wallace’s
smell, my cheeks slick against Leonie Wallace’s wet thighs, seeing
Leonie Wallace looking up, looking me straight in the eye as she
sucked me. Choose a picture on your hard drive. Jerk off to Leonie
Wallace, jerk off to me and Leonie Wallace.
We were doing it with Carter, of course. He was in there with us, in
us. Inside our movements, in the angles between our bodies.
Afterwards Leonie took a shower, locking herself in the bathroom for
over half an hour. When she came out, she was dressed in sweat
pants and a flannel shirt. She fussed with her luggage, then got in to
bed, slipped on an eye-mask and switched off her bedside light.
During all this routine, she never once looked at me. I was left there,
naked in the reek of her, my body bathed in the major glow of the TV
and the minor glow of my phone, a rhombus of light on the bed
illuminating a snail trail of semen that ran down my thigh. I was
thinking, did that happen? That may not have happened.
White Tears - Hari KunzruHari Kunzru / text
P. 176
Its tiny confines are a great
shadowed concourse that I am watching her cross. She moves
continuously but makes no headway, shuffling her old bones in place
like a deck of cards. It is infinite, this moment, Miss Alberta always
receding into the darkness, into the shadows. The slow scrape of her
shoe on the boards.
In her hand, as she turns, is a record. And I know I am slipping
into darkness, but I am powerless to stop it. Oh God, says Chester,
and there is something repulsively sexual in his tone. Oh God, he
says, it’s true.
I want to get further away, but I can’t move. I am falling down into
starless desolation and I cannot lift myself up off the stool.
—He went to Jackson. Mr. Speir made him an appointment.
—He recorded. I knew it! I knew it!
—At the Saint James Hotel in Jackson.
—Do you remember the year? Oh God, you actually have the
record. Can I see it?
—It’s not for sale.
She does not hand the record to Chester, though he is beseeching
her with every cell of his body. The man is a gut-string, taut,
vibrating with need.
—Please can I see it?
—Maybe I’ll play it for you.
—Could you just turn it so I can take a look at the label?
—Haven’t used this thing in an age.
MISS ALBERTA’S SHACK EXPANDS.
White Tears - Hari KunzruHari Kunzru / text
P. 177
She is blowing great puffs of dust off an old Victrola, the kind with
an external horn and a crank handle. Chester looks worried.
—Maybe you ought not to play it on that. Those discs are very
easily damaged.
She cranks the handle and drops the needle. A hard crackle rises
up out of the horn. Chester is rigid, mute with panic. I know what he
is thinking because I am thinking it too: Metal needles. Blunt needles
that can strip a fragile record, a rare and valuable record. Then I
cannot bother any more about what he is thinking, because Charlie
Shaw’s voice swoops down, and it is ancient and bloody and violent
and it is coming for me, hunting for me as I sink lower and lower,
into the darkness.
Believe I buy a graveyard of my own
Believe I buy me a graveyard of my own
Put my enemies all down in the ground
Charlie Shaw’s voice is looking for me, for what I have kept hidden,
the guiltiest of my secrets. His voice is filled with such terrible pain
that I can hardly bear it.
Put me under a man they call Captain Jack
Put me under a man they call Captain Jack
Wrote his name all down my back
I should not be obliged to hear this voice. I need it to stop. It is not
right. I haven’t done anything wrong. The voice wants payment, but
how would I even begin to afford the price?
It ends. At last it ends.
—How much do you want for it, Chester asks, before the needle
has even run into the gutter. His greed is naked. He is totally
powerless to hide it. Again Miss Alberta says it is not for sale.
—Why not. I’ll give you a good deal. Here, how about a dollar?
—A dollar.
White Tears - Hari KunzruHari Kunzru / text
P. 178
The little boy watches us.
—That’s right. Cash money. A shiny silver dollar right here.
—A dollar for my brother’s memory.
—I’ll give you ten for it. Ten dollars, Miss Alberta. That’s a good
price. More than fair.
—I said it’s not for sale.
—Twenty, then. You can’t argue with twenty dollars. You should
trust me. I’ll take good care of your brother’s legacy. I’m a
connoisseur. I’m a very respectful man. If you like I can give you an
undertaking, all drawn up and legal. You understand what I’m telling
you? I will write you out an official undertaking. A paper, Miss
Alberta, if you just let me have the record. I’ll make sure a lot of
people get to hear him. That’s what you want, isn’t it? For people to
hear poor old Charlie?
—You like the record?
—Of course I do.
—And what about you?
She turns to me. I can’t see her eyes. I want no part of this. Mutely,
I nod.
—Then why am I only hearing about money? Twenty dollars says
one. The other can’t manage a word. I played you my brother’s
record and you ain’t got a word?
No no no, says Chester. He’s stuttering. A misunderstanding. No
one could be more excited about Charlie Shaw. One of the great
question marks. The gap, the missing link. So many questions.
—Questions? No, I don’t believe so. I don’t believe you have any
questions at all.
Chester laughs his big fake preacher’s laugh. I want to tell him to
stop with the molasses. He is pouring it into a great red maw.
Ha ha ha ha
ha ha
ha
White Tears - Hari KunzruHari Kunzru / text
P. 179
Chester does not know where he is. Around us the night is
screaming messages and he isn’t listening. I can’t raise my eyes from
the floor, because each time I look at Miss Alberta, she becomes
more terrifying. Her substance is absence. She is made of it, made of
loss. I am slipping into darkness. It is enveloping me like a shroud.
—I’d like you to go.
Only now does it dawn on Chester that she is angry, that it is
possible he might leave without the record in his hand.
—No you wouldn’t, Miss Alberta. Think of your brother. I’m only
thinking of poor Charlie.
—Poor Charlie?
—That’s right. Poor Charlie. Now, do you just have the one platter?
Or is there more than one?
I find my voice, croak at him.
—Chester, come on. Leave her alone. We’re not wanted here.
—Keep out of it.
His face, snarling at me. There are some about which I will brook
no argument. I look at him and nothing I see makes me any less
afraid. He is prepared to do whatever it takes to get that record. He
would bite out her throat.
—Now, he says. Now. Now I don’t have the money with me, but I
can give you a hundred dollars. One hundred dollars, Miss Alberta.
Maybe even more, if there are others. Did Charlie just record the two
sides? The two songs?
—He went to Jackson, never came back.
—That’s right. Poor Charlie.
—He went to make the record.
—In Jackson. While you’re thinking about it, why don’t you play
me the other side? And if you’d just let me look at the label? I could
maybe tell you some things about it. Wouldn’t that be nice?
—I just want you to leave. Go. Get out of my house.
—Miss Alberta.
White Tears - Hari KunzruHari Kunzru / text
P. 180
And then I have more holes, more gaps. I am sitting on a stool,
watching Chester, who is looming over the old woman, raising his
voice. I am sitting in the shadows. I sit on a stool. I stand out on the
porch, I sit on the swing. I am in the driver’s seat of the car, waiting
outside the Saint James Hotel. Turning the key in the ignition. He
never came back. Turning the key, outside the Saint James Hotel.
And Chester is shouting damn you old woman. Are you going to take
that record to your grave?
White Tears - Hari KunzruHari Kunzru / text
P. 181
I SLEPT. AND WHEN I WOKE in the morning my suspicion was a
tangible thing, a taste in my mouth. It had never happened. The
whole episode had been an illusion. Leonie was moving round the
room, cleaning her teeth, doing her makeup, and I was no more a
sexual presence to her than the men on the television, the
newscasters and pitchmen and interviewees from the world of
entertainment. The disappointment was crushing. I hadn’t slept with
her. She’d rented a single room. She was rich but she’d rented one
room and I had spent the night in there with her, in the bed next to
her bed, and nothing had happened because I was harmless, not
enough of a man. And yet I had those memories. Her sounds, her
intake of breath by my ear. I had the memories but I could not trust
them. That morning she seemed entirely unchanged by what had
happened between us. Her indifference was immense. There was
none of what there should be between lovers. No complicity, no
shared secret.
As we walked to the car my suspicion grew, parasites of doubt
clenching and unclenching themselves in my gut, looking for an
orifice through which they could escape into the world. I assumed
that we were heading home to New York, as she had said, but at the
entrance to the parking lot she turned to me and asked which way.
—Aren’t we going back?
—We’re so close. We’re close, right?
—Yes.
—So we might as well go on. Which way?
—Take a left.
White Tears - Hari KunzruHari Kunzru / text
P. 182
We drove out of the lot, through the summer sunshine. We drove
down a steep hill, down, down, down into the dark until we came to
the river, a road that ran beside the levee, a threatening elevation
that formed an artificial horizon off to our right. All the weight was
on that side, the unseen bulk of the Mississippi. We passed the
turnoff for an archaeological site, Choctaw Indian burial mounds, a
group of low grassy hills. Trailers and cabins were scattered
haphazardly across the land, housing like litter. By the side of the
road, convicts in green striped uniforms were picking up trash, under
the eye of a guard sitting in the cab of a Walxr corporate transporter.
We knocked on a few doors, met country people who did not want
to be bothered. It wasn’t long before someone showed us a gun. A
white woman came to the door with it, a rifle. What did we want? We
got smartly back in the car, reversed off the property. Hand-painted
religious signs were nailed to a boundary fence. GOD HATES A
LYING TONGUE PROV 6:17 SAME SEX MARRIAGE HELL HATH
ENLARGED HERSELF ISAIAH 5:14 FOR WITHOUT ARE
SORCERERS AND WHOREMONGERS AND MURDERERS. We left
that door alone. Sorcerers, whoremongers and murderers, we slunk
on by.
My phone was telling me we were close. JumpJim’s directions had
taken us all the way from New York but he couldn’t be certain about
the exact location of the cabin. The car bumped over the rutted track.
I was vibrating at all the resonant frequencies of the system, my
actions amplified into the past, into the future. Each time we saw a
house I went to the door and said the name. Charlie Shaw, Charlie
Shaw. They shook their heads but I could feel him getting closer. And
I knew he could hear us coming too.
—A cabin with wooden shingles, under a tree.
—I don’t recall anything like that.
Charlie Shaw?
—No one of that name.
We drove down the road, we drive down the road, we have always
and forever been driving down the same dirt road. We drive inside
White Tears - Hari KunzruHari Kunzru / text
P. 183
our bubble and I look at my phone and the little red pin is on top of
the checkered flag. You have arrived at your destination. I see a
giant cottonwood tree. I know nothing about trees but this is what I
say to myself. A giant cottonwood tree. As if I have said it before. I
see a trailer park of rickety single-wides up on cinder blocks.
Washing strung on lines, children’s toys in the yards. We sit in the
car, squinting at the trailers.
—We’re here.
—This is it? I don’t remember it.
—This is the place.
—You looking for someone?
A kid on a bike. Maybe ten years old, his hair pulled back from his
face in severe cornrows.
—Yeah. You live here?
—Nice car, lady.
Thanks, says Leonie.
—You know a Charlie Shaw?
—No.
—Or anyone by that name. Shaw. Alberta Shaw maybe.
—No sir. There’s us and Sharlene and Mrs. Jackson and then you
best not walk any further.
—Was there a shack here, ever?
—A what?
—A timber shack, with shingles.
—There’s only us here, is what I’m telling you.
He cycles off. I feel like I am coming down off something, crashing.
The predawn light of some psychological day has revealed me to
myself: exhausted, out of juice. We get out of the car and walk
around by the side of the road. A woman appears at the door of her
trailer and watches us. Leonie does some quad stretches, lights a
cigarette.
—Now we can go back. We made our pilgrimage for Carter but now
it’s time to go back.
White Tears - Hari KunzruHari Kunzru / text
P. 184
At that moment I believe she is right, but the present is out of
reach and once again I understand that we have done all of it before
and I am like a skin stretched over a hollow drum, all my will and
striving just surface tension. We have always been here but it has
taught us nothing. We still don’t know what we have forgotten, what
it is we owe. My phone shows a blank screen. We have always been
standing there, Leonie pulling at one ankle, then the other, me
looking at my phone, and the car that is coming down the road has
always been coming, always coming down the long dirt road. We
hear it before we see it, we feel the bass in our guts. Ultra-low
frequencies, nausea-inducing. Waves physically displacing human
tissue. The emitter is some kind of old muscle car, a Mustang or a
GTO, murdered out in matte black paint. Black wheels, black trim.
Over the weaponized bassline runs a vocal, chopped and screwed.
Believe I buy a graveyard of my own
The driver kills the ignition, and with it the sound. For a moment
we stand in silence, Leonie and I, relieved of the awful sonic
pressure, returning the machine’s inhuman gaze. Then the door
opens and out steps a young black man, who swaggers towards us.
He wears a crisp white XXL tee shirt and jeans. Short dreadlocks
poke out beneath an angled cap. As he gets closer I see his lightskinned face, delicate and mournful. Tattoos snake down both
forearms, onto the backs of his hands. He shows me his left wrist.
Numbers 8 11 18 23. Musician. To dream you hear one play foretells
grief and sadness…
Do we feel lucky?
Even standing still before us, he is relentlessly in motion, rolling
his shoulders, hands plucking at his jeans, his shirt, the brim of his
cap. As if he is neurotically performing liveliness or perhaps merely
aliveness, the continued absence of death. When he speaks, his voice
is a surprise, a barely audible rasp.
—Yo. Who asking about Charlie Shaw?
White Tears - Hari KunzruHari Kunzru / text
P. 185
He becomes theatrically still, even his stillness a form of motion.
He scrutinizes us, stroking his chin with a thumb and forefinger. The
passenger side window of the car rolls down. Someone else is
watching us too.
—We’re not police, says Leonie.
—Why would you feel the need to say that?
I tell him Charlie Shaw’s sister lived on this spot. Lived here. A
long time ago.
—What’s the name?
—Charlie Shaw.
—I know plenty of shorties, Charles.
Inside the car, the passenger laughs. He hangs an arm out of the
door, an arm like a twist of black wire, ending in a gold-ringed hand
holding a Big Gulp cup of purple soda. I am cowed by these men,
conscious of my meager white body.
—What this guy do?
—He was a musician.
—No Charles, what he do? What you want him for?
—He didn’t do anything.
—So how come you need to talk to him, Charles?
—Something happened. A friend of mine owes him. Owes him
money.
—And if I know this Charlie Shaw?
—We just need to speak to him. We—my friend really wants to
make it right.
—Is this him, asks Leonie. Did you do something to my brother?
—Leonie, I say. This isn’t the guy.
—Step off. I don’t know you or your brother. Your friend wants to
make it right? Well that’s OK then. Sure I know the guy. Charlie. He
live just up the way.
—Really?
—Really? Fuck outta here.
White Tears - Hari KunzruHari Kunzru / text
P. 186
The man in the car laughs again, spilling a little of his drink. A red
cap is pulled low over his head. The driver bares his teeth and takes a
step towards me, but for all his bluster I know he will not hurt me
because we’ve been here before. I know I’m only talking to the
messenger. The real power lies with the man in the car.
—I said get the fuck out of here, Charles. You ain’t deaf.
—No. I’m not deaf.
—So why you ain’t moving? Get in your fucking car and turn the
fuck around.
—I didn’t mean.
That arm, black fuse wire. We didn’t mean.
—Turn the fuck around.
—Just chill out, says Leonie.
—Oh, and fuck you too bitch. You think Imma talk to you about
who I know and don’t know? Fuck all y’all.
—Let’s go, Seth. Let’s just go.
Charlie Shaw is in the car and I need to speak to him. I need him to
break his silence, to come out from behind the veil and say what it is
he wants. If he doesn’t explain, I’m scared that this will go on and the
next person it touches will be me. I am a good person. I have done
nothing wrong. Carter was the one. The young man is stepping
towards me, holding out his arms wide, the palms of his hands open,
herding us into our car. He makes me feel insubstantial. It is not
logical to feel this way. I am alive, I think as I fumble with the car
door. The ghost is him.
All I can do is roll down the window and shout as we reverse away.
—You’re the one! You’re him! We’re so sorry! We didn’t mean any
disrespect!
The passenger turns the music on high, drowning me in bass and
that terrible, pitched-down drugged-out vocal.
Put me under a man called Captain Jack
Wrote his name all down my back
White Tears - Hari KunzruHari Kunzru / text
P. 187
The driver walks backwards, lifting up his shirt. He indicates a
gaping wound in his side.
—Right through my motherfucking lung.
I slam the accelerator and we fishtail backwards along the track.
We are still alive, I repeat, over and over. My mantra. We are still
alive.
White Tears - Hari KunzruHari Kunzru / text
P. 188
leaving Mississippi. We are
driving home. It’s morning and I’m eating eggs and drinking coffee at
the counter. The cook is scraping burned food off the grill and the
waitress is taking orders. It is dark. I am asleep in bed. It is dark and
I am asleep in yet another motel room with thin walls and I hear the
key in the ignition and I am on the porch turning the key in the
ignition and the little boy is watching me. I’m trying to get Chester to
leave. The boy scrapes the bottleneck along the wire and sings.
WE ARE CROSSING THE STATE LINE,
Pharaoh
Pharaoh
Pharaoh army sure got drownded
Pharaoh
Chester has gone somewhere. I’m asleep in yet another motel
room, asleep in old sheets that smell of lavender detergent. I want to
go home. I am eating eggs at the whites-only counter and the
vibration of trucks on the highway rattles the windows and the sheets
smell of lavender and there is the sound of a key in a car ignition,
outside in the darkness at the Saint James Hotel, a gearbox grinding
as someone tries to find first.
And the next morning I am eating eggs and drinking coffee and
Chester is beside me, unshaven, eating eggs. I butter a slice of toast.
—Did you go somewhere last night?
—Where? I went out for a smoke, if that’s what you mean. Where
else would I go?
White Tears - Hari KunzruHari Kunzru / text
P. 189
CHESTER SEEMED TO FILL UP THE CAR. I was sick of him, the look of
him, fidgeting and mopping his brow. He called frequent bathroom
breaks. He said he must have eaten something. I suppose at some
point he ran out of heroin, and I ran out of any desire to be around
him. A sharp ammoniac scent rose up from his clothes, curling into
my nostrils. Somewhere around DC I began to feel nauseous, as if my
very guts were rejecting his presence. I was never more happy to pass
the turnoff for Newark and see the Manhattan skyline on the other
side of the river. It was frustrating, having to wait in the fug of
gasoline fumes, edging the old station wagon forward foot by foot to
enter the Holland Tunnel. We sat on Canal for almost an hour,
crawling towards Brooklyn. Finally I dropped him at his hostel and
was free.
I abandoned the car in the first spot I saw in the Village, not really
caring if it would still be there the next day. Carrying my suitcase and
a package containing thirteen rare 78 records, I staggered home,
pushed open the front door and climbed the six flights to my stifling
little room. When I got in, I opened the windows, switched on the
fan, and bolted the door. Manhattan in August had never felt so
good. I tried to do the things you do when you get home, the things
you do to make yourself feel “at home.” I showered. I lit the burner
and made a cup of coffee. I sat and drank the coffee, listening to the
whirring sound of the electrical converter in the closet, the
soundtrack of every cheap apartment in the city.
I did not feel at home.
White Tears - Hari KunzruHari Kunzru / text
P. 190
I went out again, drifting down to the Washington Square
fountain. As usual it was a nut house, art school girls in leotards and
long skirts and Mexican peasant blouses, bearded guitarists sporting
the plaid and denim of the working man. I got a hollow laugh out of a
guy in overalls, doing a phony rendition of “Reynardine,”
accompanying himself on a lute. The asshole college bongo players
were out too. It was unbearable.
Back at the apartment, I opened the package. I carefully cleaned
my acquisitions, sleeved them in uniform brown paper, wrote out
cards for them and filed them with the rest of my collection. The real
thing, not the circus down by the fountain. The real thing, in my
possession.
But I didn’t play my records. I filed them and looked at them, lined
up on the shelf in their brown paper sleeves. I was pleased with the
way they looked, but I didn’t play them. Instead I did other things. I
went to work. I drove around, looking for new hubcaps for my aunt’s
car. I dropped off the car with my aunt and took a train back to the
city. I hung around on Fifth Avenue, looking in shop windows. I went
to work. I drank an egg cream. I rode the subway. I went to work. But
I didn’t play those records. I didn’t play any records at all.
Without understanding how it had happened, I found myself
locked out of the world. The perimeter was everywhere and nowhere,
but it excluded me as surely as a wire fence. The city seemed hazy
and insubstantial. I moved through the newsroom, across
Washington Square, without really touching anyone or anything,
braced for the moment when I’d try to take a sheet of copy or lift a
cup and it would pass straight through my hand. When I got dressed
in the morning, my image in the mirror seemed like a film overlaid
on the moldy fixtures of the bathroom, thin, nearly transparent, not
the substantial body of a living man. At the Tribune, I avoided
Chester. I only saw him in the distance, through the haze of smoke.
He looked raggedy and tired. Before, he’d always looked sharp at
work. I kept my head down and tried to do my job. I didn’t talk about
my vacation. I didn’t talk much at all.
White Tears - Hari KunzruHari Kunzru / text
P. 191
It was too hot to spend time at home. There I sat around in my
underwear, a wet towel draped round my shoulders. I felt guilty
every time I ran down the stairs, out onto the street. Guilty for
leaving my record collection. It was too hot for shellac records, which
turn to the consistency of pizza dough when you leave them in the
sun. They needed to be stored somewhere cooler, or they could get
horribly warped. Instead of rescuing them, I draped a batik cloth
over the shelves and left the apartment. Out of sight, out of mind.
I hung around a bookstore on 8th Street, pretending I had enough
money to buy. I kept ending up back in Washington Square. The
folksingers there were terrible frauds, but at least they were alive.
They were young people singing in the sunshine. And there were
some passable musicians. A burly man with a booming voice and a
decent fingerpicking guitar style, a little curly-haired guy who played
an autoharp. Usually you could wander around, hang at the edges of
different cliques—the bluegrass mafia, young communists singing
about unions, Zionists singing about irrigation. There were a couple
of Flamenco guitar players, a Senegalese who plucked a kind of luteharp thing called a kora. That dude always drew a crowd. Whenever
he was there, I listened to him, this living man plucking living
strings.
I needed more life all the time. I craved it. It wasn’t that I didn’t
make an effort. I asked one of the secretaries at the Tribune to go to a
movie with me. We saw The Defiant Ones and made out in the
subway on the way home. I began to think I might be finished with
78’s. Maybe all that had run its course.
Then I got a card from Chester, slipped into my pigeonhole at
work, an invitation to one of his listening parties. I read his
meticulous handwriting and swore to myself I would not go. I would
not travel out to his spartan room and sit on a hard chair as he
played music he had grubbed up out of the past.
A long subway ride. The train clattering across the river. The train
going underground, running express. Stations flitting past,
rectangles of light, there and then gone. Insects battering themselves
on the kerosene lamp.
White Tears - Hari KunzruHari Kunzru / text
P. 192
I did not want to go. I did not want to go and listen in that stifling
little room.
White Tears - Hari KunzruHari Kunzru / text
P. 193
THE CHESTER WHO OPENS THE DOOR does not look well. Gaunt and
sallow, he barely speaks to me. I hand him a fifth of some godawful
sweet wine and take my seat among the others, the sweat running
down my body, soaking my shirt. The usual crowd is there. Morton,
coughing. Fat old Pinkus, lecturing Tom Grady about some
instrument, the origin, he is saying, of all blues guitar.
—What is?
—The diddley-bow. Just a simple length of wire.
—Jesus, Morton. Put a hand in front of it. You sound like you got
TB.
—Don’t joke about such things.
The men bicker in the distance. The insects are murdering
themselves overhead and I’m leaning on the porch in the heavy
night, listening to the little boy scraping, singing
Pharaoh army sure got drownded
Pharaoh
Voices far in the distance, at the very edge of perception. I’m
outside in the summer heat. I’m in a tiny stifling room. I’m at the
fountain, watching a pretty redhead dancing to a drum played by a
young black man in a fez. The cops don’t like it, the lewd dancing.
They move everybody on. No bongos without a permit, Sammy
Davis. Chester is playing something I have not heard before,
Vocalion 1704, Jelly Jaw Short, “Snake Doctor Blues”:
White Tears - Hari KunzruHari Kunzru / text
P. 194
I’m the snake doctor man: everybody trying to find out my
name
He is playing Patton, very worn.
They got me in shackles wearing my ball and chain
And they got me ready for that Parchman train
I am on the train, going underground. The kids at the fountain are
arguing with the cops. If you sing, dig, it’s just an extension of
speech. You can’t tell us not to sing. This is Nazi Germany.
—You ain’t in Nazi Germany, you’re in denial.
Rotten old cop yuk-yukking at his own joke, doubling down.
—And that’s where you can make your protest. In de Nile.
The kids at the drained fountain. Chester, haunted. He has a
conspicuous mustard stain on his shirt. Ordinarily that kind of thing
would be intolerable to him. He plays some Texan gospel singer
asking what are they doing in heaven today and coughs into his
sleeve. Then he takes a record out of the box and I see it’s on a
nothing label called Key & Gate. A label that only lasted a couple of
years, it put out novelty records, minstrel acts and third-rate dance
bands. All trash, every side. Nothing a collector would care to own.
—This, Chester says, is the only copy.
And it rises up to meet me.
Believe I buy a graveyard of my own
Believe I buy me a graveyard of my own
Put my enemies all down in the ground
Put me under a man they call Captain Jack
Put me under a man they call Captain Jack
He wrote his name all down my back
White Tears - Hari KunzruHari Kunzru / text
P. 195
Went to the Captain with my hat in my hand
Went to the Captain with my hat in my hand
Said Captain have mercy on a long time man
Well he look at me and he spit on the ground
He look at me and he spit on the ground
Says I’ll have mercy when I drive you down
Don’t get mad at me woman if I kicks in my sleep
Don’t get mad at me woman if I kicks in my sleep
I may dream things cause your heart to weep
It ends. Around the room there is silence, a palpable relief.
—What was that?
—Exquisite. Do I detect Piedmont in the guitar picking?
Chester looks smug.
—Yes, I’m guessing Georgia?
Voices in the distance. He can’t meet my eye.
—How did you get it?
A long subway ride. The train clattering across the river. Sitting on
a hard chair and listening. The train going underground again,
running express. Rectangles of light. Insects battering themselves on
the kerosene lamp.
He puts the needle down on Okeh 8885 “Honey Babe Let the Deal
Go Down” by the Mississippi Sheiks, ending the conversation. The
collectors applaud.
—Good call, Chester.
—Oh yes. I like the flip, too. “She Ain’t No Good.” Real swing to
that one.
—Shut up and listen, Pinkus.
What has Chester done?
White Tears - Hari KunzruHari Kunzru / text
P. 196
I’m a stranger to you and you a stranger to me
I did not want to go. I bolted the door. I lay down in bed. The train
ran express. As soon as he lifts the needle I make my accusation. My
voice is loud, in the small room.
—So you have Miss Alberta’s copy.
—It’s the only copy.
—And you paid for it.
You don’t happen to know where this Sheiks was recorded? Pinkus
tapping a pencil stub against a little notebook. Jackson or Atlanta?
Who’s Miss Alberta, asked Tom.
—You paid for it, right, Chester?
—I only ask you to be quiet. To do these records the courtesy of not
talking through them.
I put my paper cup of wine down on the table.
—I think I’ll leave.
Chester sets his jaw, looks furiously at the floorboards. The others
are openmouthed, gawkers at the theater of human emotions. They
feel no more empathy than fish. As I open the door he shouts after
me.
—Don’t you want to hear what’s on the other side? Well, don’t you?
The train clattering across the river. Underground, running
express. Stations flit past, rectangles of light. Insects batter
themselves on the kerosene lamp. I bolt the door. I lie down in bed.
The train runs express. Passing stations, commuters shadowed
against white tile. Chester’s eyes glitter in the lamplight. His bared
teeth. He would have bitten out her throat. I climb up the station
stairs and walk along the street to the Saint James Hotel. The sheets
smell of lavender. I bolt the door. I lie down. I am afraid.
White Tears - Hari KunzruHari Kunzru / text
P. 197
I WAS GOING BACKWARDS. I was driving, exhausted. The traffic ran
behind my eyes, headlights and taillights, smears of white and red. I
must not slip, I told myself. I must not. I reached down to the radio
and music flooded the car. I could not hear the music. I could not
relax. I am always on the road, I said to myself, so why am I going
backwards?
I could not remember. I could not remember if we had done what I
thought we had done. The heavy fob clinked against the door as she
put the key in the lock. We were always in the same place, this motel
made of particleboard and sadness. Rooms rented by the month. The
front desk protected by a thick scuffed sheet of Plexiglas.
The door rattled when our neighbors walked by.
She was from long ago. I saw her in the yellow light of long ago. In
the yellow light I watched her unpack, concentrated, burrowing
down, throwing shoes and underwear on the floor. She took out her
Ziploc bags of supplements. You could hear next door moving about
in their room, then an EDM beat began to punch its way through the
wall. Neither of us could speak. We knew we were both thinking
about the same thing, about the gaping wound in the young man’s
side. The bloody rise and fall of what? Not his heart. Some other
organ.
From the second-floor walkway, you could see the oil-stained
parking lot. A line of fast-food neon over a chain link fence. Some
guy was kicking the hell out of the vending machine.
motherfuckeryoufuckeryoumotherfucker
White Tears - Hari KunzruHari Kunzru / text
P. 198
The clerk hovered nervously. Stop with that. You break it I’m
gonna call the cops.
Hello my name is. I had the pleasure of cleaning your room. A
handwritten God Bless and a smiley. Leonie’s head, moving back and
forth at my hips, the hollow of her cheek, the eye drugged or lazy,
fixed on me, daring me to challenge her, daring me not to come.
—Not my machine, I tell you not my problem! Call number on side
and talk to them.
—Seth.
motherfuckeryoufuckeryoumotherfucker
—Seth. Calm down. Stop doing that. Get a grip on yourself.
I told her I’d go out for food. Let her go, I thought. She’ll never find
another man like you.
—Get a bottle too?
—What kind?
—Anything. Tequila? Get tequila and a big bottle of Sprite. The ice
machine works, right?
I was too tired to drive to the liquor store. I couldn’t trust myself at
the wheel of a car. So I was walking, and I had always been walking, I
have always been walking, I am walking and my mind is clear, my
consciousness sharp, in the present moment, in the bubble, and I
even dare to think of the future. A starless night, nobody on the
street. I have wandered off the strip into a landscape of dead
theaters, one on every block. Roxys and Ritzes with their blank
marquees. Do not trespass signs. For sale serious only save the BS.
The other stores all boarded up. I can’t see anywhere that might sell
liquor. I can’t see anywhere open at all. There is a diner on a corner,
blazing with light, a beacon of plate glass and chrome in the
darkness.
I take a booth and order a steak, looking out at the desolate street,
the red sign of the Saint James Hotel visible over the roofline.
My steak, when it comes, is thick and bloody. I cut into it with
relish. I realize I have been very hungry. The sign over the counter.
Whites Only.
White Tears - Hari KunzruHari Kunzru / text
P. 199
At one point I had been carrying records. I look down to check. No
records. Instead, by the side of the bench is a battered black guitar
case. How long have I been carrying a guitar?
I am sitting in the booth. I am walking along the highway, as
trucks roar by. Let her go, I think. You have to let her go. I am paying
my check, scattering coins over the table. I am in the darkness, the
highway in the distance, picking my way through parking lots, over
the barrier from one to the next. I am leaving the restaurant,
stepping over the dividers, carrying a bag from a liquor store. Behind
me, taking the same path, is a man walking a large dog, a pit bull or a
mastiff. I look over my shoulder every so often. The man and his dog
keep their distance, neither gaining nor slowing. I walk more quickly.
The man with the dog is behind me, making his way between the
parked cars.
The motel sign up ahead. A red neon arrow. Rooms. At first I take
the blue lights for decoration, some feature the manager switches on
at night. Then I see there are police cars. Uniformed officers
everywhere, on the walkway, milling around in reception. I walk
through the parking lot and they see me and as one organism, one
blue body, they turn and draw guns and there is the sound of
running feet in the lot around me and someone yells drop it.
—Drop it! Now!
Three, four guns. Panic, repeating it, shouting. Slowly I put down
the guitar, I put down the box of records, I put down the plastic bag
with the tequila and the plastic bag with the Sprite and the paper bag
of takeout on the ground. I straighten up and raise my hands.
The door to our room is open. Cops all milling round, craning their
necks to take a look.
—Down! On the floor!
My hands are forced behind my back. There is a knee on my neck.
I can’t breathe, I say.
—Shut up.
—Leonie? Leonie!
White Tears - Hari KunzruHari Kunzru / text
P. 200
—Shut up. You’re calling out to her? You vicious little bastard. You
sick fuck.
The open doorway. The shadows beyond it. All the uniforms down
now. Down on me. Knees and elbows and heavy out-of-shape
breathing and someone grinding his knuckles into my temple,
digging on some nerve. I begin to scream. All the uniforms down on
me.
White Tears - Hari KunzruHari Kunzru / text
P. 201
AFTER I LEFT HIS APARTMENT, Chester Bly vanished from my life. The
next day he was missing from his desk in the newsroom. By the
following week, someone else was sitting there, accumulating messy
piles of paper in a way Chester would never have tolerated. One of
the other messengers said he got fired. No one seemed to know what
for.
Soon afterwards I quit my own job at the Trib and become a clerk
at the 8th Street Bookstore. The owner said I was hanging around so
much I might as well get paid for it. I went to readings, hovered on
the edges of conversations about art and politics. I told myself I was
done with record collecting, and whatever evil hung around Chester
Bly had spared me as it passed overhead. My only unsevered
connection was the shelf of 78’s lurking behind the batik cloth,
untouched and unlistened to.
I kept meaning to cancel my magazine subscriptions, but the
issues kept coming. I couldn’t bring myself to throw out the pile of
unread Down Beats and Jazz Reviews without at least looking at
them, so one day, instead of throwing them into the trash chute, I
found myself crouching down in the hallway outside my apartment,
flipping pages, skimming headlines and reader’s polls. In one I found
a small ad.
WANTED:
BL. ON K&G
ANY WITH S.J.H. MASTER #’S
White Tears - Hari KunzruHari Kunzru / text
P. 202
K&G. Key & Gate. The advertiser was searching for blues on Key &
Gate, any record made in a particular session. The address at the
bottom was Chester’s. On that label, the letter prefixes usually told
you where something was recorded, but I couldn’t think of a town or
city with the initials S.J.H. The magazine was only a couple of
months old. I looked through others. The same ad had appeared in
every issue of every major collecting magazine for at least five years.
Long before I drove Chester to Mississippi, he’d known that Charlie
Shaw did a session for Key & Gate. Even now, it sounded as if he
wasn’t sure that any more material was out there. He quoted no
titles, no catalog numbers, just the master number of the session.
Chester had no proof anything had been released, or even recorded,
except the two sides he had. But he was hungry. If something was out
there, he was determined to have it in his hands.
I threw out the magazines, every one. The stink of Chester’s
record-lust rose up off the pages and I could not get far enough away
from its taint.
Time passed and slowly my unease began to ebb. I did normal
things, ate and drank and went to movies, ignoring the faint air of
unreality that had settled over the world around me. One cold and
rainy fall day, I was heading down MacDougal. I had my head down
and my collar up, my hands jammed into my pockets as I hurried
from the bookstore to the diner where I usually ate my lunch. When
Chester stepped into my path, my mind was on the blue plate special
and for a moment I didn’t recognize him. He looked haggard,
drained. He was wearing a filthy gray suit, the legs of the pants
spattered with mud. His long wet hair was plastered down over his
face.
—Damn it, he said. You stole it and by God I will have it back! His
chest was quivering under his grubby shirt. He wasn’t wearing shoes,
and his feet were black with city grime.
—Chester. You look like hell.
—Enough with the soft soap. As if you care about me or anyone
else but your own damn self!
White Tears - Hari KunzruHari Kunzru / text
P. 203
I realized that he must have been waiting for me, standing there
shoeless in the weather. I wondered why he hadn’t come into the
shop. He kept pulling a sordid handkerchief from his pocket and
dabbing foppishly at his face. I raised my hands. I wanted to placate
him. He looked agitated, capable of violence.
—I don’t understand. Chester. Has something happened to you?
—Don’t play the innocent. You had the gall, the goddamn
effrontery to chastise me for my—well, my act of preservation,
because that’s what it was. And now, I don’t even know what to say.
How the hell did you do it? That’s certainly one question.
—I still don’t know what you’re talking about.
—I invested in some heavy-duty door furniture, top of the line.
Never trusted that super further than I could throw the wop bastard.
—Chester, are you OK?
—Chains. A dead bolt. You are a goddamn snake, you know that? A
polecat. I don’t have a clue how you got into my room but it’s gone.
And you do know what I’m talking about, mister high and mighty.
Your hypocrisy stinks to heaven. So what if the old woman didn’t
give it to me? She was too dumb to know what she had, surely you
see that. Unless I took matters into my own hands, Charlie Shaw’s
legacy would have been dust in the wind. That makes me the rightful
keeper of that record. I am acting on behalf of posterity.
—I don’t have it, Chester. I didn’t take any record.
—It’s mine. I want you to give it back. They’re like children to me,
every one.
—I said I don’t have it.
—You’re a liar. A goddamn dirty liar.
His handkerchief bunched in one hand, he began rooting around
in a pocket with the other. I thought he might pull a knife.
—No need for this, Chester.
—My collection has an integrity, you little bastard. It is a single
document, a unified design. What you have done is an act of
White Tears - Hari KunzruHari Kunzru / text
P. 204
vandalism. Did you pick my lock? Is that how you did it? At least
have the grace to tell me.
—I didn’t pick your lock.
—Well, did you break in? Just tell me, for the love of God.
—I didn’t break in.
There was no knife, just another handkerchief, which he bunched
up with the first. By this time, the rain was coming down hard. I was
shivering. I could feel water seeping under my collar. Chester looked
pathetic, disordered. I didn’t have his record. All I wanted was to get
away.
—I have to go.
—You goddamn thief!
As I took a pace backwards, he grabbed the sleeve of my coat and
began shouting for a policeman.
—Get off me!
I pulled away and began to walk off down the street. He came after
me, still shouting police stop thief. No one wanted to know, passersby rushing to get under cover, unwilling even to look at us. I turned
back, water streaming off the brim of my hat, and saw him limping
far behind, unable to put his weight down on one foot. I left him
standing on the curb, supporting himself against a street sign,
impotently shaking his fist.
I spent weeks looking over my shoulder as I went to and from the
bookstore, always expecting Chester to be lurking in a doorway,
ready to wreak his revenge. But he never appeared. I saw in the New
Year at a party of laughing West Village bohemians who danced to
the Modern Jazz Quartet and threw confetti at people down on
Bleecker Street. As I looked out of the window at the happy roiling
crowd of drunks below, I believed—once again—that I was done with
Chester and Charlie Shaw and the whole rotten apparatus of the past.
Then a letter arrived. It was a sort of mimeographed circular that
must have gone out to all Chester’s wide circle of collectors. Though
it was not a personal message, it made me almost physically sick. The
flyer announced that he intended to sell his record collection. I
White Tears - Hari KunzruHari Kunzru / text
P. 205
thought I’d misread, it seemed so unlikely. His entire collection. He
wanted to sell as a single lot and would entertain offers in the region
of ten thousand dollars. I crumpled it up and threw it away,
pretending to myself that I wasn’t scared. The price was ridiculous,
no collector had that kind of money. But what could have brought
him to sell? Anyone else, perhaps. People do fall on hard times, but
Chester Bly would have plucked out a kidney or an eye before he
broke up his collection, let alone got rid of the whole thing. What in
the world did he have but those disks? I thought about my own
records, possibly already unplayable, deliquescing behind the batik
cloth like a guilty conscience.
One evening Tom Grady came bursting into the shop. I was
furtively reading a science-fiction novel under the counter and
dreaming of Los Angeles, a city where I would not have to trudge
through slush and horizontal sleet to get home. Tom, the youngest
and most socially integrated of Chester’s disciples, was a bulky
Irishman with a fund of surplus energy that should have been
directed into digging canals or writing stream-of-consciousness
novels instead of working in a photographic lab or whatever lowcommitment day job it was he held. He was wrapped in a heavy
woolen coat that seemed to exhale steam as he entered the shop,
throwing off moisture like a large dog. Since my exit from the
collecting scene I’d nodded to him a couple of times in the White
Horse, but we’d never spoken beyond a few pleasantries. I’d let him
know that I was no longer interested in old records, and since there
was little else he cared about, we had no reason to detain each other
further.
—Did you hear about Chester, he said at once. No preamble,
straight up to the counter, quick enough to startle me.
—No.
—Dead. Burned to death. He had some kind of accident with a
space heater.
—You’re kidding.
—No I am very much not kidding.
White Tears - Hari KunzruHari Kunzru / text
P. 206
—How did you hear?
—Pinkus called me. He went by the building. He’s over there most
days. He thinks Chester is going to give him his collection.
—Sell it to him?
—No, give. Pinkus says Chester had some kind of change of heart
about being a collector. He just wants it—wanted it—off his hands.
Pinkus doesn’t think he’s sold them already, though apparently
Chester was very unclear. Pinkus thinks they were probably in there
with him. All of them.
—The records.
—Keep up man. Yes, the records. He can’t be sure, though. He says
he can’t be a hundred percent. But I expect it’s all burned to hell.
—Why can’t he be sure? Either the records were in the room or
they weren’t.
—Chester never even lets the poor bastard in. He makes him talk
through the closed door.
—Seriously?
—Chester’s kind of let himself go.
—But the room was gutted by the fire? Everything’s gone?
—I don’t know.
I had to serve a woman, who bought Schopenhauer and the
Tibetan Book of the Dead. I wrote the names down in the ledger
alongside the prices and stamped a receipt. Grady paced about
behind her, pretending to look at a dictionary. As soon as she left, we
took up our conversation.
—I saw him a while back in the Village. He didn’t look good. Have
you been going to his parties?
—Jesus, no. That pretty much ended when you left. My God, that
night. What happened? You slammed the door and Chester ranted
on and on about your ingratitude and then kicked us out. All over a
Mississippi Sheiks side.
—It wasn’t the Sheiks.
White Tears - Hari KunzruHari Kunzru / text
P. 207
—So what was it? He played a Patton that evening, didn’t he? One
I hadn’t heard. And he finally told me the name on that fingerpicking
record.
—Bayless Rose. Anyway, you stopped going.
—Well, I never got another invite. Maybe Pinkus did. I don’t think
so. It sounded like Chester stopped having anyone over at all. The
last time I saw him he turned up at that bar on Sullivan yelling about
how you’d stolen a record from him.
—He told you about that?
—About what? It wasn’t anything. Pinkus says he found it again a
week or two later.
—He found it?
—Then he decided he’d lost it again. Told Pinkus he couldn’t stop
it slipping away. Odd thing is, he wouldn’t say what it was. I mean,
how are you supposed to talk about a stolen record with a fellow who
won’t even tell you its name?
I realized I was sweating. I felt as if I might be running a fever.
Grady lit his pipe and shrugged.
—Crazy as hell, Chester. He always had that in him, you know? I
thought so, at least. But those records. Jesus, just that Bayless Rose
record on its own! To think that’s all gone!
—You didn’t want to buy his collection?
—Sure, I wanted to.
He rubbed fingers and thumb together.
—There’s a lot of things I want.
There was a great unspoken urgency to him. The thing he could
not talk about because it was indecent, because proper form would
be to dwell further on the personal qualities of the deceased.
—Look, you don’t have to approve, but it’s an important collection.
There are things that will be lost forever.
—If it’s a fire, they’re already gone. Just the heat in the room.
—But if they’re not.
—Well, what’s stopping you? Why don’t you go and check?
White Tears - Hari KunzruHari Kunzru / text
P. 208
—Christ, you have to make me say it. I don’t want to go on my own,
OK? Pinkus says they found his feet. Just his feet, nothing else, in
those awful old leather slippers he wore. The rest of him was
completely incinerated. That’s a terrible thing to happen to anyone.
—You want me to go out to Brooklyn on a night like this?
—Come on. I’m begging. You’re the nearest thing to a sane person
in the whole gang. I didn’t know who else to ask.
—You understand I’m not collecting anymore. I told you that. I’m
not involved.
—You sold your records?
—No.
—So you still have your records.
—I don’t listen to them.
—If you still have your records, you’re still in.
Train going express. Both hunched in our coats on the El platform,
hands crammed in pockets. The wind slicing at us like a mugger,
inverting Grady’s puny umbrella.
—Chester went to see Pinkus at the bank.
—Pinkus works in a bank?
—Some savings and loan in midtown. Chester turned up there,
stinking all to hell, Pinkus said it smelled like he shit his pants,
pardon my French. Told Pinkus he needed to come over to his room
right away and take all the records. Pinkus was worried about the
customers. He could have lost his job, someone in a state like that
running around in the office. He just wanted him gone, but Chester
wouldn’t leave until he promised that he’d come and take the
records, as soon as possible, that very night. Pinkus didn’t think he
was serious.
—Did he go?
—Of course he went. Pinkus can’t stand Chester, you know that.
He puts up with him because he’s obsessed by the music. But he went
all the way out to Williamsburg and Chester wouldn’t let him in, just
talked to him through the door.
White Tears - Hari KunzruHari Kunzru / text
P. 209
—Well of course. He’d never just give them away.
—Here’s the weird part. He told Pinkus he couldn’t give him the
records because it was too dangerous. He couldn’t have it on his
conscience. That’s what he said. Word for word. Pinkus tried to
persuade him, but nothing doing. He’s been going back every day
hoping Chester will change his mind.
—Did you tell Pinkus you were planning to do this?
—No. I thought—put it this way. If we find anything, he’ll be on to
us soon enough.
He gave me a straight look.
—Fifty-fifty, OK? Split right down the middle.
—Grady.
—Just say it.
I could have replied, I don’t want anything. I could have told him I
was just there out of curiosity, or any number of other things. But I
didn’t. I shook on the deal.
—Fifty-fifty.
I was still in.
Chester’s building looked doubly sinister in the darkness and rain,
a great brick slab set on a corner, with a soot-blackened stone porch
and an empty lot on either side. Five bucks to the super got us into
Chester’s room. I could smell the stink of smoke as we climbed the
stairs. The guy unlocked the door for us but didn’t want to go in.
Some kind of accident while cooking, he said. Hell of a mess.
As soon as I stepped inside, my eyes began to water. The room was
soot-blackened, but weirdly undisturbed except for a rough circle,
about three feet in diameter, scorched into the floor. One of Chester’s
two chairs was intact. The metal skeleton of the other lay on its side
in the scorched patch. There was no space heater, or anything else I
could see that might have set him on fire like that. The mattress was
gone from the bed frame, and there was nothing stored underneath
it. No boxes. No records. Grady looked stricken.
White Tears - Hari KunzruHari Kunzru / text
P. 210
—Poor bastard. What a way to go. I mean, Jesus, the feet. Imagine
his two feet, just sitting there.
He flashed another five at the super, who was standing in the
doorway, a handkerchief over his mouth.
—Were there any records here?
The super looked wistfully at the money and shook his head. He
hadn’t carried out any records. Some books, a few cups and plates. I
flashed on Chester sitting in that chair. Sitting and listening, or just
sitting and waiting in the silence. Was that how it was? Chester, rigid
in his chair, knowing he couldn’t escape, waiting for the heat to erupt
in his core. Suddenly it was all I could do not to run for the door. I
fought it for a few seconds, then gave in. The records weren’t there.
Nothing could keep me in that room a second longer.
I could hear the sound of boots, clattering on the stairs. My own
boots. Chester had gotten rid of his collection, but it hadn’t been
enough to save him. I still had mine. I was still in. Panic completely
overtook me and I fled along the street. I didn’t know where I was
going. It was a primitive urge, fight or flight, unmodulated by
civilization or decency. Grady caught up with me as I reached the El.
I was shouting, hyperventilating. Somehow he managed to calm me
down. He said the best thing would be to go to a bar and get drunk.
All the way back into Manhattan, he babbled on at me. A couple of
drinks. Steady the nerves. How he wished Bly had answered the
letter he wrote. Grady had his hopes set on the success of a certain
little scheme. He thought maybe Chester would consider selling his
Broonzys separately or perhaps even the Robert Johnsons. He
thought, with a little notice, he could have raised enough money to
take a few, at least. But it wasn’t to be. We ought to look on the bright
side. They weren’t in the room so they weren’t damaged. That meant
he got rid of them before it happened. So they were still out there. All
we had to do was find who had them. Someone would know. We just
had to keep an ear to the ground…
I left him on a street corner, still talking. In my apartment I bolted
the door and lay down on the bed, knowing that I would not sleep
that night. The next morning I sold my records to a guy at the
White Tears - Hari KunzruHari Kunzru / text
P. 211
Washington Square fountain. I just walked them down there in a
crate and sat for an hour or so with a cardboard sign saying Blues
until a buyer turned up. He was a rich kid who wanted to start
collecting. I told him a few of them might be warped but he didn’t
mind. He knew nothing, less than nothing. Though he handed me
enough money to pay a couple months rent, he didn’t really
understand what he’d bought, the burden he’d taken on. I didn’t try
to explain.
White Tears - Hari KunzruHari Kunzru / text
P. 212
THE OPEN DOOR TO OUR MOTEL ROOM. The ambulance pulling into a
parking bay as I am thrown in the back of a patrol car. The hand on
the top of my head, pushing me down through the door. Me yelling,
smacking my forehead against the window and the partition that
separates me from the front seat. Screaming her name again and
again until both rear doors fly open and fat deputies pile into the
space on either side of me, leading with batons and elbows and fists.
They drag me out onto the concrete. You’re resisting, they shout, for
the benefit of some dash or chest cam. I am not resisting. I am just
screaming. I am screaming out my grief and loss in the blackness
framed by the doorway. I am screaming at the crowd of jostling cops.
Through the kicks and punches, I dimly realize they are setting a
scene, erecting a legal framework within which I can be killed.
—Stop going for our guns!
It will be quick, a justifiable homicide. Brave officers acting in selfdefense. I flinch from the next thing, the bullet. When it comes, I am
going to go through that doorway into the dark. I will push my way to
the front of the crowd.
Excuse me. Excuse me.
But instead of shooting me, they just hit me some more with their
nightsticks and then bounce my head off a concrete parking divider.
After that they drive me downtown.
Leonie, oh Leonie. I remember the car in motion, an intermittent
orange flare against my eyelids. I remember getting to the precinct,
half-supported by two uniforms into an office where they took my
prints and wiped my cuts and bruises with a greasy cloth fished out
White Tears - Hari KunzruHari Kunzru / text
P. 213
of some sink. They cleaned me up that much for my mug shot; after
it was taken I waited as the arresting officers were seen by a doctor,
who took more pictures, documenting their not immediately obvious
bruises and contusions. I was told there would be assault charges,
resisting arrest. I sat there, hunched on the bench. The entire night
shift stopped what it was doing to give me the hard stare.
It was a relief to be put in an interview room, a solid door shut
behind me. Cuffed to a table, I waited and stared at the peeling green
paint on the walls, the scuff marks at the foot of the door, suggesting
that it was frequently kicked open or shut. Slowly the room began to
contract, to compress itself around me. I could feel the pressure on
my eardrums. Against my will, I began to tune in to what was there,
just at the limit of perception. I tried not to hear it, the static sorting
itself, separating out into syllables. No conversation held in that
room had ever stopped happening. The interrogations just carried
on.
Why did you. Where is. Don’t give me that. Captain, have mercy.
She was dead. It was the only possibility. They would only behave
like this towards me if she were dead.
Murder.
I’d left to get a bottle. A bottle of tequila and a bottle of Sprite. I’d
left her alive, watching television.
Don’t get mad at me woman if I kicks in my sleep
I may dream things cause your heart to weep.
I had left her alive.
Through the crowd, through the door, into the darkness. What was
in the room? Leonie was in the room. All of them, staring at her, so
cold, so fair.
Murder.
What was it they wanted so very much to see?
A detective came in, carrying a phone directory and a cup of coffee.
Lacking a free hand, he kicked the door shut with his heel. He was a
White Tears - Hari KunzruHari Kunzru / text
P. 214
bulky man in his forties or fifties, with a broad blunt face and
thinning sandy hair. He registered nothing much as he looked at me.
A man eyeing his inbox. He put the coffee and the fat book down on
the table, scraped a chair across the floor and flopped down on it,
wearily loosening a button on his suit jacket. He smiled to show a
mouthful of widely separated teeth, then the smile faltered, to be
replaced by a look of consternation.
—I forgot my notebook and pen. I need my notebook and pen,
right?
He waited for a response. The pause lengthened. He raised his
eyebrows and nodded encouragingly.
—I guess, I said.
—Right. Because you’re going to make it easy and write out what
happened. College guy like you, am I right?
A telephone directory.
—But you haven’t told me anything. What happened to Leonie?
—Aw, shucks. Really? Don’t be like that.
—Like what?
—All what happened boss what happened. Trust me, things will go
quicker if you write it out.
When did I last see a telephone directory?
—I need to know what’s happened to Leonie. Is she OK? Is she in
the hospital? Please, what’s going on?
—So you don’t know what’s going on?
—I keep telling you.
—That’s all you want to say to me? That you don’t know what’s
going on?
—That’s right.
—Are you fucking kidding me?
He put his coffee cup down, eased himself out of his chair and
picked up the telephone directory. He swung it a couple of times in
one hand, and decided to use a double-handed grip to hit me,
bouncing it off the side of my head so hard that I jerked sideways,
White Tears - Hari KunzruHari Kunzru / text
P. 215
upending my chair and crashing to the floor. My arm, still cuffed to
the desk, was jerked violently in its socket. My shaken brain hazily
registered him crouching down behind me. Then he pulled a hood
over my head.
I know the things you are supposed to say, the things you’re
supposed to do. You’re supposed to ask for a lawyer. I didn’t say or
do those things. I didn’t ask for a lawyer. I was hyperventilating into
burlap that stank of vomit and something I’d never smelled before
but recognized on an animal level: the smell of other people’s fear.
All I could hear in my left ear, where he’d hit me, was a blast of static.
The smell. The fear smell. The pit of my stomach was knotted tight,
but everything else in my body was loose, not under my control. I
needed to piss and I tried hard to hold it in, but somehow I couldn’t
and urine began to leak out into my shorts. I pleaded with the
detective to uncuff me so I could go to the bathroom, whimpering
promises into the hood. I kept on and on, but there was no response.
Gradually I accepted that I must be alone, and at some point he had
left the room.
In one ear nothing but the roaring, in the other office sounds,
somewhere nearby. Phones ringing, someone laughing. I knelt there,
my forehead on the cool wet tile. When they came back, a long time
later, I did not hear their footsteps.
I was crouching down by the desk in my urine-soaked pants,
fishing for the chair with my uncuffed hand, when the hood was
suddenly taken off. Blinking in the light, I found that the chair was
lying on its side, just out of my reach. The sandy-haired detective was
accompanied by another man, taller, thinner, with small features
clustered at the center of a round flat face like a dirty white plate.
They folded their arms and looked at me, approvingly.
—Now we’re making progress.
—I don’t know about that. Take a look at him. Looks like the
stubborn type.
—Be careful what you wish for, son. You want to be a rebel, here’s
where you end up.
White Tears - Hari KunzruHari Kunzru / text
P. 216
—You’re in our house now.
—Where the fun ain’t got no end.
They uncuffed me and lifted me to my feet.
—Don’t you dare get piss on me, boy.
The sandy-haired detective examined his pants. The other one
propped the chair back up on its legs and shoved it against mine. Sit
down, he said. I sat down.
—Now stand up.
I stood up.
—Sit down.
I sat down.
—Now stand up. Sit down!
—Stand up!
—Sit down! Stand up!
—Sit down!
I half-crouched, braced in position, hesitating between sitting and
standing. The thin detective swept my legs out from under me and I
fell sprawling on the floor, hitting my head against the side of the
desk as I went down. It was the surprise as much as the pain. It
robbed me of my power to act. As I tried to collect myself, they
hooded me again, shoved me down on the chair and began to shout.
What filth I was. They knew what I’d done. They knew because they’d
seen with their own eyes. What I’d done to that girl. I wasn’t human.
I did not deserve the name. I was refuse, offal.
So cold, so sweet, so fair.
Was she dead? Leonie couldn’t be dead. I begged them to tell me
what had happened.
—Because you don’t know?
—Stand up.
I tried to stand up. I could hear one of them moving round to my
side of the desk. I flinched. No one touched me.
White Tears - Hari KunzruHari Kunzru / text
P. 217
I AM SITTING AT THE DESK. THE HOOD IS OFF. My eye has swollen up.
There is a roaring in my left ear. The detective opens a folder and
starts placing photos on the desk like a tarot reader laying down
cards. Black-and-white eight-by-tens of a woman, a female corpse.
Lying on her back, the arms flung out. The skirt is lifted up over her
face. Her old-fashioned underwear has been pulled down around the
thighs. A second photo. The skirt down. Just her torso. Black
everywhere. Black on the bedsheets, filling the great hole, the cavern
of her chest. A third picture. Two feet, one bare, dirty or bloody, on
the other a vintage shoe with a strap and a rounded toe. None of
these are her clothes.
—What is all this, I ask.
—I got to show you her face? You need me to show you a picture of
what you did to her fucking face?
This is not. They aren’t her photos. This is not her. This is not
Leonie.
—These are old pictures. This all happened a long time ago.
—Can’t you cut the crap for a single minute?
He flips another photo onto the desk. We have always been here,
sitting at the desk. We had always been here. He showed me another
photo. Until then, I had not known what obscenity was. Not really.
That was what they had been looking at. All the cops clustered
round the door, jabbing each other with their elbows to catch a
glimpse, getting hard inside their uniform pants. All gathering round
to take their turn with the real.
White Tears - Hari KunzruHari Kunzru / text
P. 218
They told me it was time to confess, and when I would not, they
cuffed my hands behind my back and walked me to the corner of the
room, where they hooded me and ordered me to turn and face the
wall. One of them hit me with something heavy, a sap or a nightstick.
As I stumbled, they pushed me down on the floor. My mouth began
to fill with blood. It felt as if I had bitten through my tongue. I
coughed and spat into the filthy hood. They switched out the light
and left the room.
It could not have been Leonie. Those were not pictures of her. Her
face was still beautiful, to me, but the hair, the clothes, the wallpaper
in the background, all of it was wrong. Rose pattern wallpaper. The
motel’s walls had been plain magnolia. She was dead in an old room
with rose pattern wallpaper. The clothes were not the same. It was
impossible. Leonie, dead in another room, years before she was born.
They left me alone for a long time. They had forgotten whatever
string or tie they used to secure the hood and I was able to worm it
partway off my head. I lay and looked at the world on its side. Table
legs jutting from the wall. A tin mug, coffee spilling up towards the
door in the ceiling. The cop had been carrying a paper cup, with a
plastic lid. This was an enameled tin mug. A chipped white tin mug
with a blue rim. I was lying on a floor covered in white hex tiles. At
another time the room had a concrete floor, sealed with some kind of
rubbery paint. All the voices whispered in the darkness, all the
confessions that had ever been made there.
A tiled floor. The shoes came down from the ceiling and walked
around me. Two pairs of wingtip oxfords, highly polished, prodding
me with their toes. Argyle socks, wide cuffs on suit pants.
—Make them shine, boy.
The leather toecap, knocking against my mouth and nose.
—Lay off, Gene. You’ll just get blood on them.
They walked around me. They turned out the light. They turned it
on again. They asked questions, suggested various things that I must
have thought, things I must have done. I stood up, I sat down. They
White Tears - Hari KunzruHari Kunzru / text
P. 219
sat and smoked, told me how bored they were. One of them put out
his cigarette on my hand.
I screamed.
—Jack, he can’t handle it no more. Look at him.
—See, we know you’re a good boy. Deep down.
—But you’re the type thinks he’s a sport. Hanging round outside
the general store.
—Drinking liquor, throwing dice.
—Just sign the paper.
—If you don’t know how to read, we’ll read it to you.
Propped up at the table, the light in my eyes.
—I thought you were one of the good ones. Not like them city
niggers.
—They think they’re so slick.
—Please.
—See that, Jack, he can’t handle it no more. Wants to go back to
his momma.
I told them I didn’t do it, but my tongue was swollen in my mouth.
—What you say, nigger?
Please not that word. I did not hear that. I am not that.
I looked down at my hands. I have always been looking down at
my hands, but as in a dream when you find yourself unable to read
text or tell the time, they are vague. Though I see them, though I
know they’re there, I can’t concentrate on them to extract the single
piece of information I need.
—There’s been a mistake, I say.
I pull up my shirt. The same thing. I can’t tell. I look at my
stomach but I can’t tell what color it is. I can’t tell what color I am.
I may dream things cause your heart to weep
—You sick little bastard.
White Tears - Hari KunzruHari Kunzru / text
P. 220
Hood on. And they dragged me downstairs, down into the red
maw, into the entrails, and I tried to keep my head up off the
concrete steps but I couldn’t and it was slammed again and again,
each concussion doubling the roar, the red raging in my ears. I had
disappeared. No one knew where I was. No one knew and no one
would come to get me.
A clip attached to my fingers, another up under my hood, its metal
teeth biting down on my ear. The sound of a handle being cranked,
then the electricity, sending my muscles into spasm. I screamed until
I was just a mouth. Electricity, the past of the future, primitive and
brutal. Screaming, sucking. The clips were pulled off. A high white
sound. A high whine.
—Why did you do it?
Hands tugging at my pants, tugging down my filthy underwear.
—Now look at you.
Oh death spare me over.
After a while I lost consciousness.
Then I was back at the desk, cuffed to its leg. A wooden desk,
pitted and scratched, my face very close to its surface. A wheedling
voice in my ear saying boy let me give you a helping hand. You can
talk to me. I know how it is.
I felt so grateful.
—You know what pain is now, am I right?
—Yes.
—You want to be cool? Outside of society? Be careful less you get
what you wish for.
—But it wasn’t me. I never wanted this. Carter was the one. The
one who wanted to be cool.
—I don’t even know what you’re whining about, boy. Let me tell
you how it was. You wanted to have one of those sweet little girls.
You wanted to break yourself off a little something something.
—Please don’t talk about her.
White Tears - Hari KunzruHari Kunzru / text
P. 221
—But she wasn’t interested. She told you no. But you went ahead
and took some anyway. Those rich fancypants white girls. They got it
all. Their parties and tennis lessons. But you deserve something in
this life too, am I right?
I can’t see his face.
—Don’t talk about her.
—What you say?
Cranking the handle. The whirring electrical sound. No hands no
arms no fingers no feet no cock no guts no teeth or eyes or ears or
hair. Just a screaming voice, just panic. Juddering behind the desk.
The smell of charred skin, my rigid body a vibrating membrane. No
mouth, no tongue, no teeth, no belly, no anus, just a tympanum,
amplifying the pain and passing it on.
Back at the desk. The polish pitted and scratched, my head yanked
back.
—We’ll try again. You wanted her. You wanted to fuck her so bad.
But she’s way out of your league, right?
—Yes.
—Yes what?
—Yes sir.
—Yes sir what?
—Yes sir she’s out of my league.
—That’s right. Say it one more time for the Captain.
—She’s out of my league.
—Yet you wanted to fuck her all the same.
—Yes.
—Yes what, you little punk?
—Yes sir, Captain, I wanted to fuck her all the same.
—You piece of shit. They are going to turn you out on the farm, you
know that? You are going to take it from everybody. Say to me, I
wanted some.
—I wanted some.
White Tears - Hari KunzruHari Kunzru / text
P. 222
—Say, I wanted to stick it in her. I wanted to do that rich white girl
in her every hole.
—I wanted.
—That’s right. And it’s what you did.
—I wanted to stick it in her.
—And?
—And she wouldn’t let me.
—Now we’re getting somewhere.
—So you’re in the room with this fancy piece of heiress pussy and
what do you do?
—I stick it in her.
—That’s right.
—I fuck her.
—That’s right, boy. You fucked her. Oh, you did. You fucked her
good.
White Tears - Hari KunzruHari Kunzru / text
P. 223
FOR A LONG TIME I WAS ALONE IN THE DARK. I am alone in the dark. I
have always been here, now, all those years ago, alone in the dark.
But around me the darkness was shifting, is shifting, subtly altering
its disposition. I can feel a Formica surface, slick against my sweating
cheek. I open my eyes a sliver and see a pair of gleaming white tennis
shoes shuffling over the floor. Men are gathered outside in the
corridor, muttering. Someone’s ringtone: a little snatch of a country
rock song. The door opens and I squeeze my eyes tight, anticipating
pain, but a meaty hand claps me on the back and I open my eyes to
find them all around me, the detectives, in attitudes of tiredness and
dejection, wiping their faces with handkerchiefs, free hands jammed
in their pockets.
—That you, son?
On the table in front of me is a fax. A mug shot on a curling piece
of paper. A pair of eyes is just about discernible in the black dotmatrix field of the face. It’s absurd. It would be impossible to
recognize any human being from an image which is no more than a
shape, a smudge. My mind is forming unwanted associations. My
mind was forming associations, long ago. I was thinking, you
communicate with other law enforcement agencies by fax? What year
is this?
Blank. Say something.
—No sir.
—Looks like you.
Freeze.
Ha ha ha ha!
White Tears - Hari KunzruHari Kunzru / text
P. 224
Ha ha ha ha!
Ha ha ha ha!
Ha ha ha ha!
How they all fell about. Good old boys. I looked down at my hands,
turned them over. My skin was white. I touched my ear, my white
fingers came away wet. Clear fluid was coming from my ear.
Cop’s finger jabbing at the mug shot.
—Looks like that’s the guy. The perpetrator. Nasty-looking son of a
bitch. They found him close to the scene with, shall we say, certain
items of hers. Got a record, too. Real ghetto type.
—He killed Leonie.
—That’s right. You’re free to go. I’m sorry that we had to keep you
overnight.
Blank. Say something. Still blank.
—But Leonie is dead.
—Unfortunately so. But try to see it in a positive light. At least it
weren’t you what done it. We won’t need to detain you any further.
—Detain me?
My hands, my fingertips.
—Look at the boy. Never seen anyone so reluctant.
—Go on, get out of here!
Ha ha ha ha!
Ha ha ha ha!
Ha ha ha ha!
—Knock it off, Bob.
Clear fluid, coming from my ear. A long low roaring and a higher
tone, an insect whine.
—Look, I’m sorry we had to get rough on you.
—About. About this man.
Not a man. A black shape with two eyes.
—How do you know he killed her?
—He had her things.
White Tears - Hari KunzruHari Kunzru / text
P. 225
—What’s his name?
—Honest answer, it don’t matter. Put it out of your mind.
—Is it Charlie Shaw?
—Like I said, it’s nothing for you to worry about. Just leave all that
to us.
—Charlie Shaw. Are you telling me to my face that Charlie Shaw
killed Leonie?
—Look at you, all self-righteous and spoiling for a fight. You have
every reason to feel sore, I suppose. Best I can tell you, crime like
this, passions run high. You got to cut the department some slack. A
lot of feelings around this sort of thing. Guy in the picture, he’s a
knucklehead. Long list of priors. And now, thanks to you, he’s off the
street. So it’s a win. You got to think of it the right way.
—You arrested Charlie Shaw. You have him in custody.
—Looks like you didn’t do it, kid. Just sign the paperwork and we’ll
have you on your way.
—Where is he? What facility?
—I don’t have that information, but if you call the number, the
switchboard or whatever, they’ll set you right. That’s it, your name
on the line there.
It was some kind of waiver. I didn’t read it. I expect it said that I
was never there and none of what happened happened and in any
case no one would believe me if I told. My hand held a pen. The lead
detective slipped the signed paper into a folder.
—I’m sorry for your loss. She was a good-looking girl.
I sat in my chair, unable to move. Though I didn’t dare look up at
him, I could feel the change in the detective’s bland blunt face, the
weight of his frown.
—Move along, son. It’s time.
O Death spare me over.
Another detective leaned over me. I did not look up. A forearm on
the table, skin the color of brick. A hand gripping the handle of a
mug that said Number One Dad. I still could not move. I thought it
White Tears - Hari KunzruHari Kunzru / text
P. 226
must be a trick. Any moment, when they saw that I had let down my
guard, the mood would shift and the pain would start up again. I
struggled to keep my composure, always on the verge of moaning or
flinching in terrorized anticipation. I stared down at my hands, their
raw pink knuckles, the blue veins, terrified that I would see them
begin to change, all my security slipping away.
—My advice, the man murmured into my ear. Go to church. Drop
some money in the collection plate and leave your questions with it.
Go live your life.
Move along. As if it were all settled. Time for me to move along,
when nothing was settled at all.
I stood up unsteadily from the table and walked through the crowd
of men. Each pace was an effort. I expected to be tripped, taken
down. I did not believe for a second that my reprieve would last.
White Tears - Hari KunzruHari Kunzru / text
P. 227
MOVE ALONG.
Excuse me, excuse me.
It is daytime and I’m standing on the sidewalk outside some police
precinct. What city? A dun-colored block. Office buildings and a
parking lot with a chain link fence. Tall weeds grow up through the
sidewalk. After the catastrophe. I don’t seem to have anything with
me, no phone, no wallet, no box of records. I’m not wearing shoes. I
am not sure why I am here. Something happened, something in the
past. I am in pain. My whole body feels pulpy, disarranged.
A lawyer is waiting on the sidewalk. A man dressed as a lawyer, in
the costume of a lawyer. Sharp suit and tie pin and rapacious cuffs.
He approaches, grinning like a long lost friend. It is as if he has been
superimposed on the blasted streetscape, a man moving through
another context (a meeting room, a restaurant) that would allow for
such apparent ease and expansiveness.
—The media are all at the other precinct. We asked the Police
Department to tell them they were holding you over there.
He’s carrying two large cups of coffee. All I’m seeing, really, is the
coffee.
—Sugar’s already in that one.
Reaching out my arm is painful. I only have hearing in one ear.
There is a whisper in the other, a flutter of static. Media, I ask. What
media? To hear when he speaks, I have to hold my head at a certain
angle.
—Look, can I drive you somewhere? They’re probably already on
their way over. The PD only stalled them as a favor to us. Out of
White Tears - Hari KunzruHari Kunzru / text
P. 228
respect for our privacy.
He can’t be much older than me. Handsome, alpha, well-adjusted.
A perfectly symmetrical face in a frame of accurately cut dark hair.
When I look away it is hard to retain the details of his face in my
mind. All I am left with is a sense of attractiveness, plausibility, an
invitation to trust without any of the accompanying qualities
(reassurance, warmth) which actually inspire trust.
—Our privacy?
—The family. I represent the Wallace family. And yours, of course.
Your privacy. The privacy of all those affected by these terrible
events. Please, my car’s just here.
I nod, mutely. It hurts to breathe. I want to get in a car and go
home. I want someone to pick me up and drive me to an orderly
suburban house, to sit in a kitchen and eat a sandwich and drink a
glass of orange juice. We pull away from the police precinct and the
solid sound of the doors locking is so comforting that I begin to cry.
The lawyer pretends he has not noticed this. After a while I collect
myself. We drive out of town along a straight road lined with
junkyards. I ask if he knows where my things are and he says what
things.
—My clothes. I left my stuff at the motel. I have no shoes.
—Sure, buddy. Thoughtless of me. Let’s get you fixed up.
We pull in at a big box store and the lawyer buys me shoes and
underwear, a polo shirt, toiletries, a little rip-stop nylon hold-all to
put it all in. I change in the bathroom and wash my face and brush
my teeth and plug my ear with toilet paper, muting the roar and the
whine. Dressed in my oversized new shirt I feel like a service sector
employee. Hellomynameis. When I’m finished changing, I watch the
lawyer for a few moments from the doorway before I step back out.
He is tapping keys on his phone, pacing to and fro just inside the
sliding doors, bathing in the chill of the air-conditioning. Everything
about him is precise. The knot of his tie, his unblemished skin. Some
men thrive under discipline. They express themselves through
White Tears - Hari KunzruHari Kunzru / text
P. 229
correctness. All that pent-up energy is probably released by playing
some slightly esoteric sport (fencing, pelote) on weekends.
—You look a lot better.
—I just want to go to bed.
—Rough night. I get it. How about some breakfast? I need to talk
to you. It’ll only take a few minutes.
A big grin. Overdoing it. I realize he is nervous. There is something
he wants. We drive a tortuous route out of town, taking turns on
small rural roads that run between fields of soy and corn. Finally we
pull over at a diner, an old wooden shack with peeling pink paint and
a barbecue pit in the yard. Inside it is crowded with solid citizens, the
atmosphere a steamy fug. An obese young cashier is wedged behind
the register at the door. Beyond him, in some kind of open kitchen,
women are frying steaks in iron skillets. As we wait, the lawyer sends
more texts, updates to whoever is controlling him. The walls are
covered with framed photographs, crowded together in drifts and
clusters. Black-and-white eight-by-tens of forgotten singers and
actors, groups of men holding fish, giving the thumbs-up. White
people together, at work and leisure down the generations.
We squeeze through to our table. The lawyer takes off his jacket,
revealing a pair of suspenders embroidered with the crest of some
team or society. He orders breakfast. I have to turn slightly to the
side to hear him talk. He says my privacy matters. He says the family
wants to help me protect myself.
—Did he do it?
—Who?
—The man they arrested. Charlie Shaw.
—Try the tamales.
Above our table are pictures of judges, an astronaut. I eat a little
food. I am very hungry, but the inside of my mouth is raw and my
tongue is swollen, so it hurts to swallow. The lawyer notices that I am
in pain. He adopts an expression of concern.
—What kind of health insurance do you have? I’ll give them a call,
get them to cover some out-of-pocket expenses.
White Tears - Hari KunzruHari Kunzru / text
P. 230
—I don’t want a doctor. I want to see Charlie Shaw. How would I
do that?
—Why would you want to? I mean, come on. You’re being too hard
on yourself. You don’t need to take every burden on your shoulders.
You know?
—No, I don’t. I don’t know. How would I find out where he’s being
held?
He sighed.
—About all that. I understand you must feel very emotional right
now. This is an emotional time for you. For all of us, but you
especially. My own personal opinion? You should take a step back.
The family is grieving for a beloved daughter, as well as their son.
Can you imagine what they’re going through? The last thing they
need right now is intrusion, and the potential media interest is, well,
you understand. It’s not what anyone wants. So they’re worried
about you. You don’t have the same resources, so you’re more
vulnerable to—to press intrusion.
—Intrusion.
—Violations of your privacy. At this difficult time.
—Why would I worry about my privacy?
He shows me an email on his phone. “From the personal office of
Donald Wallace III.” Rich people grow organizations around
themselves like hair or fingernails. This personal office, this tentacle
of Carter’s father, has authorized a monthly transfer into my account.
Enough money, I quickly calculate, to cover rent and living expenses.
—Forget about him, the killer. Go away and rebuild your life. Don’t
get involved in any of this. In return you can look forward to a little
stability. You’re freelance, right?
I nod. I feel very tired.
—So you’ll appreciate some regular income. I mean, I know how it
is.
—Oh yeah?
White Tears - Hari KunzruHari Kunzru / text
P. 231
—Well, not personally. I have a couple friends, entrepreneurs, you
know.
I am not sure what relevance his friends have to me. I nod again.
—Great. The conditions are straightforward. When I say forget
about this, that’s exactly what you do. No matter what you see or
hear or read in the paper, you keep quiet. You don’t speak to the
media. If anyone from the media tries to contact you, you do not
engage in conversation. You put the phone down and call me
straightaway. You don’t attend the funeral. You don’t try to contact
any member of the family, except through me. If you have any
business to transact with the family, you can do so through me. It is
strongly suggested that you do not base yourself anywhere in New
York State or the State of Mississippi, but I will need to have your
location, phone and mailing address and so forth so I can get in
touch. We just want to help you to put this behind you, which I’m
sure is what you want to do anyway. Start afresh.
—Did you say don’t attend Leonie’s funeral?
—That’s right.
—So Leonie’s dead.
—Yes. Are you feeling OK?
—And they don’t want me at her funeral?
—It’s going to be private. Immediate family only, is what I
understand.
—Tell me what happened to her.
—I’m sorry, but I don’t know all the details.
—They don’t want to talk to me? Who is they? Cornelius or the
parents? I was with her, you know? They need to understand that.
We were together.
—I’m sure I didn’t mean to imply anything.
—But that’s what I’m saying.
—The family takes the view that, although they bear you no ill will,
it is best to maintain some distance from you at this time.
White Tears - Hari KunzruHari Kunzru / text
P. 232
—This is all Cornelius. That motherfucker. And not contacting any
member of the family would include Carter?
—From what I am given to understand, Carter is no longer capable
of making decisions for himself. His father holds power of attorney.
He is authorized to act on Carter’s behalf. The Wallace Family wish
you to respect their privacy in their time of grief, just as they are
respecting yours.
—Fucking Cornelius.
—Sure, man. I hear you. But this is coming from Mr. Wallace
senior. I have some documents for you to sign. Basically what I just
told you, plus language that confirms that the payments are in no
way an admission of fault or liability for anything that may have
happened to you.
—For how long would I get these payments?
—Indefinitely, as long as you comply with the terms of the
agreement.
He unzips an expensive-looking leather portfolio, and takes out
some papers.
—Also, with the understanding that this invalidates any existing
contract between you and Carter Wallace.
—What existing contract? You mean our music? There wasn’t any
contract as such.
—I see.
—That’s my—that’s our music. I own half. That’s how we do. Fiftyfifty. Straight down the middle.
—But you have no written contract specifying those terms?
—No. We never needed a contract. He was my friend.
I begin to hear myself, like every rube in every movie. I hear myself
becoming a cautionary tale.
—Carter’s lawyers handled everything with the labels.
He nods.
—That would be our firm.
White Tears - Hari KunzruHari Kunzru / text
P. 233
I realize I am being fucked. The Wallaces are fucking me. It has,
says the lawyer, been interesting to hear me clarify. I have confirmed
his understanding of the situation. He talks about subsequent to this
and further to that, and then into my lap he drops “the younger
Mister Wallace’s incapacity” and the news that “his copyrights” have
“been assigned to a 501c3.”
—Since it looks, sadly, as if Mr. Wallace has entered a persistent
vegetative state, the family has decided to create the Carter Wallace
Foundation, to work on releasing his music and honoring his creative
legacy by providing scholarships to deserving young student
musicians from a minority background. By accepting this payment,
you assign to the foundation whatever rights you hold in your joint
endeavors.
—Carter’s dead.
—Technically, no.
—But this foundation would own the music we made together.
—Correct.
—As a sort of monument to Carter.
—Yes.
—All rights.
—In perpetuity. I understand that Carter Wallace was primarily
responsible for the creative content of your musical productions, and
you acted in a technical capacity.
—You piece of shit.
—I beg your pardon?
—I made that music. I made the sounds that made that music. I
made the machines that made the fucking sounds. That is my fucking
music.
He is not fazed. He does not flinch or even alter his expression.
—The Foundation’s mission is to ensure that Carter Wallace’s
unique creativity is recognized and honored. However, we foresaw
that you might view yourself as a collaborator, and so I’ve been
White Tears - Hari KunzruHari Kunzru / text
P. 234
authorized to offer you a one-time payment of seventy-five thousand
dollars, nonnegotiable, on condition that you sign today.
My ear hurts. I tilt my head to see if it feels any better.
—I’m not signing.
—It really is nonnegotiable. And the offer won’t be repeated if you
do not sign today.
—I said I’m not fucking signing.
I’m raising my voice, but the people at the other tables take no
notice. No one even turns around. The lawyer sips his iced tea. I
often suspect that I make no impression on others. Gestures that
ought to have an impact seem to fade before they reach their
audience, before they bridge the gap between me and the world of
the living. This lawyer can take my music away, the music I made
with Carter, the evidence that despite what people say, we were
partners, that Carter respected me and I understood him better than
anyone, and when I shout out in protest the man doesn’t even feel
the need to acknowledge my anger. He just lets me wind down my
spring and adjusts his tie and carries on.
—You should really take this seriously. It is a one-time-only offer.
Not wishing to be blunt, but you don’t have any resources to fight a
copyright case. And of course, if you did decide to go that way, the
discretionary monthly payment would be withdrawn.
That is the price. My music is not my music. I have never even
been friends with Carter. I am to make myself vanish from the
Wallace family’s gilded life. The lawyer speaks, his words moving in
and out of audibility as I shake my head in disbelief.
—We were like brothers.
—Honestly. Look at your circumstances. This is the best deal
you’re going to get.
I am so tired. At least I now have a figure. A dollar amount. I have
always wondered what my friendship with Carter was worth.
—Cornelius must really hate me.
—I couldn’t speak to that.
White Tears - Hari KunzruHari Kunzru / text
P. 235
—He locked me out of my studio. He took everything, equipment I
built from scratch. And now he gets the music too? Unreal.
—I assure you, the Foundation is very respectful of your friend’s
musical legacy. We’ve already been in touch with several of the
artists he worked with. There are some great ideas. A box set. A
tribute concert. Look, I can probably get you another twenty-five K to
buy yourself some new gear, set up another studio, maybe in LA.
—You don’t know what you’re saying.
—I’m saying you need to sign this paper and move on. It’s the only
sensible play.
—You don’t understand. The data. Just the sample libraries.
Thousands of hours of my life are in those libraries. None of that is
replaceable.
—I see.
—Do you? Do you see? There are boxes I built myself from
schematics.
—Call it an extra thirty, to acknowledge your time and effort. The
Foundation is very keen to draw a line under this. They don’t want
any gray areas. I’ll have to make a call to confirm, but that should be
fine.
—And will Leonie get a foundation?
—Beg your pardon?
—Do they each get a foundation, or just Carter? What charities will
Leonie’s foundation support?
—The family may opt to expand the mission of the existing
nonprofit.
—I won’t take a cent of your money.
I am tired. In pain. He knows that. He knows I only have so much
fight in me, so he leads me round in circles, ducking and weaving,
coating everything in legal language. I raise my voice. He increases
his offer. Sometimes he gets up from the table and glances nervously
out of the window. I think he is looking out for news crews.
Eventually my knees buckle and I find myself on the canvas,
White Tears - Hari KunzruHari Kunzru / text
P. 236
documents in front of me, a heavy pen in my hand. I scratch my
name on the paper. Once he has my signature, the lawyer goes back
to issuing threats.
—If you break any of these conditions, the payments will cease.
Any suggestion that you have tried to contact the family and the
payments will cease. Any conversation or communication with a
journalist. A journalist comes to us, says he has a source, we have
reason to believe that source is you, the payments will cease.
He puts the documents in his portfolio.
—I’m supposed to take you to the bus station and buy you a ticket
to wherever you want to go.
—The bus station.
—The family was quite specific about that. Not the airport. You are
expected to be discreet.
—Where will I go?
—That’s entirely up to you, within the scope of our agreement.
Entirely your call. Just phone me when you’re set up.
The fluid has stopped seeping out of my ear. I take out the toilet
paper plug.
White Tears - Hari KunzruHari Kunzru / text
P. 237
I WAS POLITE WHEN I BOUGHT TICKETS. I did not engage anyone in
conversation. I stayed in motels, or slept in bus terminals. When you
know nothing, you have many reasons to keep silent. Language
exposes you to other people. It commits you to versions of the world
you may not trust. At many times of day and night I would find
myself, just for a second, a fragment, a terrifying splinter of time,
back in the underground room with the detectives, waiting for agony,
hyperventilating inside the hood. It was hard to concentrate. The
stink of my abjection seemed to follow me around.
I rode the bus. I got off in small towns. I did not call the Wallace
lawyer. I could, I suppose, have gone to an airport. After a few days,
no one would have been looking for me. But instead I rode the bus.
Somehow an airport seemed risky, inadvisable. To be forced to check
each situation, to watch this man’s posture, each expression passing
across that woman’s face. In any transaction, I had to be on my
guard. Any encounter with authority.
Plastic seats, coin-op armrest televisions.
Waiting rooms. White and Colored.
When you are powerless, something can happen to you and
afterwards it has not happened. For you, it happened, but somehow
they remember it differently, or don’t remember it at all. You can tell
them, but it slips their minds. When you are powerless, everything
you do seems to be in vain. You stow your bag, show your ticket,
climb the steps. All the sinners climb aboard. You shuffle down the
aisle to your seat and pluck at the little concertinaed curtain that
does not block out the sun. Days spent with your forehead pressed
White Tears - Hari KunzruHari Kunzru / text
P. 238
against window glass. Nights turning your shoulder, trying to get
comfortable, feeling the cold air freezing your neck. Your road seems
dark. Your path is not clear. You only feel alive when you pass a
source of light, driving through a town, pulling in for a rest stop.
Your trace on the window, on all the windows the same horizontal
smear. The grease of unhappy foreheads.
I got off in small towns, my pack landing in the dust. The driver
pulling out the cases, throwing the cases in the dust. The bus
terminals of small towns. Hunched sleepers and vending machines.
The driver’s peaked cap, pushed up high on his head.
Sweating in the heat, throwing out the cases. I fish in my pocket
for a quarter. The TV eats the coin, shows strobing shadows, ghost
heads…heiress Leonie Wallace’s death at a motel in rural
Mississippi, where she was found after what appears to have been
an overdose of sleeping pills. Wallace was one of the heirs to a
$10 billion global logistics empire. Her shares in Wallace Corp.
stock were worth a reported $80 million. In a statement to media, a
company spokesman said that they were not able to rule out suicide
at this time. Now, friends and family are asking themselves why the
beautiful and wealthy artist would feel so bereft of hope for the
future.
I pass through the world, but I leave no trace. Leonie’s death is a
suicide. I was never her brother’s friend. Money says our friendship
never happened. Money says that I was never really alive at all. The
Wallace family, struck by a double tragedy. The suicide of their
daughter, a senseless attack on their son. Dignified in their grief, they
appear in long lens pictures taken at the crematorium. I do not see
how I can win, not against them. They are too old in the game.
They believe in me, the Wallaces. They believe in me enough to pay
me money. Charlie Shaw believes in me too. I know that I am only
provisionally, tenuously alive, caught like a bird, a bubble, in
whatever reality has been imagined for me. I wonder where it will
come from, what direction. How my death will come and fill me up. I
look for people following me. I make ATM transactions for variable
amounts, at irregular intervals.
White Tears - Hari KunzruHari Kunzru / text
P. 239
Sleeping on plastic seats in bus terminals. Standing in the
doorways of dead theaters, consumed by shame. The police kicking
the sole of your boot to wake you up.
—Where you headed, sir?
—I hold a valid ticket.
Standing by the dumpster, watching them taser a man outside a 7Eleven. All the men on the ground outside 7-Elevens. All the spilled
Big Gulp cups, all the ice sprayed across the concrete.
I make ATM transactions just before I leave town. Only then.
My inquiries are, of necessity, discreet. By asking questions, I put
myself in breach of the family’s terms and without their money I will
starve. But I don’t really have a choice. Move on, they said. Move
along. As if everything had been settled. Nothing has been settled.
Nothing is over. I take what precautions I can. I call from public pay
phones. I scout locations before I use them. Exits, lines of flight. If I
sense any anomalies, any wavering in the fabric of the present, I pull
out.
—Yes, the inmate’s name is Shaw. Charles Shaw. What agency? I’m
sorry I don’t have that. Well, yes that’s why I’m calling you. That
would be who? The Metro police? And you’re. Oh, I see. Well, can
you put me through. Yes. Hello is this. I am seeking information on.
What do you mean you can’t see him in your system? If I could what?
Surely you have that information. I’m an ordinary private citizen.
Why would I need to tell you something you already know. Surely
you hold that hello hello hello
Secrets are shared at the back of long-distance buses. Whispers
and confessions. A young couple furtively masturbate each other
under a blanket. A fat woman clutches a prayer card. The back of the
bus is a place of lottery tickets and ritual candles, fast luck and
money drawing, because all the riders know it would take a miracle
for good fortune to settle on these shiny fabric seats. Twenty weeks of
lottery numbers for twenty dollars. If that’s the best you can do,
maybe you even borrow the twenty dollars. You buy the rabbit’s foot,
the reputed swallow’s heart. You sprinkle a little powder, add a root
White Tears - Hari KunzruHari Kunzru / text
P. 240
to your bag. You ride and you try to be careful, but however still or
silent you make yourself, there is always the risk that someone will
turn their eye on you. People are bored on buses. They will break
down any wall. I lost my apartment lost my car lost my dogs I’m in
the navy visiting my kids my moms down in Florida see that on my
arm I got that in my tag name is but my government name
Sometimes I crack under the pressure of all that language. I find
myself moving my lips and before I know it I am trying to explain.
The pain in my heart. The things they did. To me, to Carter, to
Leonie. The shame. Every time you get suckered into thinking she
wants to listen, but it slips off her, just rolls away and gets lost
somewhere under the seats. You try to tell her but she loses her
appetite for talk. Every time. This is how you learn: none of what
happened to you happened.
Gradually I learn to keep a check on myself. On my mouth, on the
sounds of my body. The slight fluttering wheeze in my breathing that
never will go away, the creak of my joints as I shift position in my
seat at night. Such things are tells, to a sensitive listener, someone
who may wish you harm. You try not to express, but there is always
something. You give yourself away and one morning the jinx is there
again, all round your bed, rubbing against your ankles like a cat.
I hire someone to make inquiries on my behalf. A week later I call
from a phone by the entrance of a Tulsa park and he lets me know
that I shouldn’t get my hopes up. All he has is word-of-mouth. There
are no documents or photos, nothing that would really hold up. But
he believes his information was reliable. A suspect was taken into
custody under the name of Charles Shaw. Yes, his contact is sure of
the name, definitely Shaw, but there are complications. The suspect
was taken to a special unit, a place which did not participate in the
usual police booking formalities. I tell him I don’t understand.
Participate? I thought it was the law. He tells me the place is an
exception, a black site. It is exempt from scrutiny. There is no
publicly available information about the special unit. There is no
website for the special unit, no phone number. There is no public
access. Yes, he is working on it. He is trying to find out more.
White Tears - Hari KunzruHari Kunzru / text
P. 241
Got to keep moving. Never look in the restroom mirror. Small
towns. Rusted water towers with green vines climbing the legs.
Water towers overgrown with vines. Sleeping in the terminals, under
the porch of a church. Sleeping in the bushes by a lake. When you are
powerless, your belief or disbelief is irrelevant. No one gives a damn
about what you believe. But if some reality believes in you, then you
must live it. You can’t say no thank you. You can’t say I don’t want
this. If horror believes in you, there’s nothing to be done.
Black sites. I know all about black sites. A pay phone on the dock
at a marina in Pensacola. Evening. Standing in a narrow cone of
light. I have bad news, he says. Or good news, depending. Your man
was definitely being held at the special unit. No, no paperwork.
Nothing like that. Everything happened very fast. Thing is he’s dead.
Yes, that’s right. The day of his arrival he was found unresponsive in
an interview room. They only had him for a few hours. Yes, they did.
Natural causes. No, I only have what I was told. Where is he now?
You mean you want me to find out what happened to the body?
Motels and bus stations. Small towns. Rooms rented by the week,
by the month. I live like a spy in a wartime city, a state of constant
managed terror. Where is Charlie Shaw? I close the blinds, so eyes on
the walkway can’t see the order in which I pack my bag. Try to stop
your body sending or receiving. Try to stop all signal traffic. And now
remember that you have to eat and maintain yourself in certain other
basic ways. It is not straightforward. It puts you under pressure. I
climb the steps, take my seat, press my forehead against the smeared
window glass. I listen to the top forty through headphones, the same
songs over and over again. Bobbysoxer records. “Sentimental
Journey.” “Don’t Fence Me In.” There are always audible ghosts,
remnants of compression. If you make a file of all the parts that are
lost, you can hear them quite distinctly. I was making eight-hour
round-trips to use an ATM.
The crowd at the door. Slipping down into the dark, running down
the dry hill, pushing through the jostling crowd at the door, stepping
over the threshold, the crowd of uniforms competing, climbing over
each other just to take a look.
White Tears - Hari KunzruHari Kunzru / text
P. 242
Excuse me, excuse me.
A pay phone on the outside wall of a convenience store in Midland,
Texas. A high wind blowing dusty topsoil into my face. No record of
an inquest, says the man. But he’s dead and buried. I can give you a
plot number, a location. Yes, absolutely. I have that. You can go and
see for yourself.
Until I see you. Until we come face-to-face. See you for myself.
Until I see you. I cannot let it lie. If I don’t find out what he wants I
will have to step through the door, into the dark. I will have to see
her lying there, stretched out, so cold and fair. Late one night, I walk
out into a potter’s field with a spade and a flashlight and a grid
reference. I find what I think is the place and begin to dig, but I can’t
be sure I have it right. I am full of doubt. The ground is hard and
stony. It does not look as if it has been recently disturbed. The spade
feels like rubber as I try to push it in. I dig and sooner than I
expected I am exhausted and my palms feel raw, already blistered at
the base of the fingers where the handle of the spade has been
rubbing. I lie down on the pile of earth and rest and the sky begins to
lighten to a proto-gray and in that gray light I come to the realization
that I will never be able to dig my way to Charlie Shaw. What do I
expect to find? A body? A living man down there in the coffin? A man
singing and playing a guitar, with whom I can negotiate, a man I can
beg for mercy? Is that what I am digging for? To beg back my life?
White Tears - Hari KunzruHari Kunzru / text
P. 243
STANDING AT A PAY PHONE outside a yard lined with identical storage
units, somewhere outside Baton Rouge. A chemical tang in the air.
Naphtha vapor, refinery smog. My clothes are covered in mud. Trash
whips around my feet as the trucks go by.
I punch numbers. Nothing has changed. I am out of ideas. It is
impossible to catch up with Charlie Shaw and now I am falling fast. It
is impossible to live without leaving a trace. Hit the resonant
frequencies of those long-distance waiting rooms and you
understand soon enough. The thick dark muttering. The residue.
Every complaint and every argument, every day of every year,
happening simultaneously. A roaring in the consciousness.
There is no reply from my man. I put down the phone and feel a
sort of flickering, an unsteadiness about my surroundings. I look
down. At my feet, beside a crushed plastic cup and a burrito wrapper,
is a sheet of yellowing paper, an old flyer.
KEY & GATE ARTISTS PLAY AND SING FOR
YOU. ASK TO HEAR THEM!
The greatest stars perform for you only on Key & Gate.
“A smile on the face and a song in the heart!”
25000 Series latest releases
25800—Down On The Old Camp Ground and Father, Prepare Me,
The New Cotton Blossom Minstrels
White Tears - Hari KunzruHari Kunzru / text
P. 244
25801—My Old Pal Rastus and Beans, Beans, Beans, “Uncle” Vernon
Sylvester and his guitar
25802—I Don’t Know Where To Go and Goodbye Honey Goodbye,
Esther Shaver piano Acc. Will Robinson
25803—The Stars and Bars and Yessir I’m Going South, The
Savannah Club Orchestra
25804—Mysterious Coon and Run Rabbit Run, Emmett Charles
25805—Dry Bones and My Old Dog Bow Wow, The Westmoreland
Institute for the Blind Quartette
25806—Graveyard Blues and The Laughing Song, Wolfmouth Shaw
I look around. There is no one on the street, no place for anyone to
hide. I scour the trash in the gutter, but see nothing out of the
ordinary. I can feel the hair on my arms begin to stand up. My whole
body is charged, expectant. “Graveyard Blues” and “The Laughing
Song.” Now I know what is on the other side of the record. But what
is “The Laughing Song”? I can only guess. At one time there was a
fashion, a whole genre, music hall songsters emitting staccato bursts
in time to upbeat rhythms. The laughing fad was all over before the
First World War. It seems an unlikely choice of material for Charlie
Shaw, or Wolfmouth Shaw, if that was his nickname or stage name,
but then a raw country bluesman makes no sense on a list populated
with bad-sounding vaudeville acts singing songs that went out of
style before the turn of the century. None of it makes sense.
Wolfmouth. The wolf’s mouth. What kind of person would have such
a name?
At the bottom of the page is the label’s contact information. Write
to us to find out more! An address on 28th Street in New York City. I
look around again. There is no one on the street. No sign of life at all.
The giant semis grind past as I shoulder my bag and walk down the
road towards the bus station.
White Tears - Hari KunzruHari Kunzru / text
P. 245
I WOKE UP AS WE CROSSED THE BRIDGE into Manhattan. Midtown lay
under a fog, which moved and shifted uncertainly between the
buildings. The bus riders coughed and stretched, preparing to face
the city which had already closed around them. I didn’t recognize
anything, not the rain-slicked stone buildings, not the crowd of men
and women in their gray hats and coats. The bus reached the Capitol
Greyhound Terminal, and I took a trolley downtown. I could
remember certain places, though I was not sure when I had been to
them. My memory was faulty, more broken every day.
I found a room, I kept a low profile. I knew better than to approach
Key & Gate by any straight route. The phone number in the catalog
did not work when I tried it. Too few digits. I understood that I
would have to chance upon the path, that simply going to the address
would not work. I spent my days walking far uptown. Mott Haven,
Hunts Point. Empty blocks, drifts of rubble, a patchwork of gang
territories. Boys in cut sleeve jackets made way for me to pass. Black
Spades, Ministers, Seven Immortals. No one wanted the evil eye on
them. X’s were marked on structures judged unsafe to enter, burnedout tenements that looked like rows of crying women, blind-eyed
window sockets smudged arson black. Here and there I could see
signs of life. A washing line. A little girl trying to ride a tricycle over a
sidewalk that had degenerated into a mountain range of broken
slabs.
One day I took the subway downtown, watching my fellow riders
slump in their seats, the tangled magic marker tags over their heads
ramifying like a shared map of thought. There was so much I could
not call to mind. Was I being followed? I expected so. Someone,
White Tears - Hari KunzruHari Kunzru / text
P. 246
some agent, had put the flyer into my hands. Someone wanted me
there. I tried to sense my pursuer. Who had come after me as I
changed cars? Who had been behind me on the stairs? I rode
downtown to the tip of the island and the sand and rubble of the
landfill. A gaunt man was selling paletas in the shadow of the twin
towers. I bought one and wandered through the abandoned
waterside of the city, dawdling in the middle lanes of the empty West
Side Highway, past the piers. Coal barges plied the river. A kingdom
of rotting wood and rats.
Day after day, I walked the blocks or rode the subway. Though the
weather was cold and windy, I came to feel as if I were burning up,
that some source of radiation, lodged in my chest, was threatening to
incinerate me, just like Chester Bly. I drank gallons of water, carried
around a big plastic jug. Because I was afraid, I tried to rush things. I
went to the address on 28th Street given on the Key & Gate flyer.
When I passed a young woman taking pictures on her phone, I knew
it was hopeless. On the wrong side of a gulf of years I found a condo
building, the ground floor occupied by Kailash Perfumes, a
misspelled inkjet sign taped to the door reminding the customer that
“We Sell Only Orignal.” The men knew nothing. They’d had the lease
for a while, I would have to ask the boss. They did not run a retail
business so minimum purchase would be ten units.
And so I tried to take my mind off my fear. I walked the blocks, I
guzzled water. I went to listen to the musicians playing in
Washington Square. Sometimes, when I went uptown, the elevated
railway was a park. At other times, I made my way beneath the
thunder of trains passing overhead. Once, there was nothing but a
bridle path through farmland. I walked until the heels of my shoes
had worn down. Then one afternoon I found myself there and all at
once I had always been there, standing in the doorway of a Chinese
laundry, looking at a row of buildings whose façades were caked with
a hundred years of soot. Painted signs advertised services: Booking,
handbills, printing, scenery and costumes. From open windows came
the sound of people banging at pianos, three or four pianos playing
different dance tunes all at once.
White Tears - Hari KunzruHari Kunzru / text
P. 247
I pushed open a door and climbed a winding staircase with a
rickety rail, squeezing past men carrying horns and violin cases,
folders of sheet music. I climbed past the Solomon DeVere Agency,
the Rabbit Foot Company. I climbed until I was short of breath and
the light faded and I had the familiar sensation of going down as I
climbed, into the bowels of the earth. There, on the frosted glass of a
door, gold letters announced the offices of Key & Gate Recording
Laboratories. I knocked and someone on the other side made a
sound. It was not the sound of a voice, exactly. More like an object
dropping with a thud onto a heavy carpet. I turned the handle and
opened the door.
Stepping through into the dark. Excuse me, excuse me.
Behind a cluttered desk sat an exophthalmic young woman with
dyed black hair. Her bug eyes were ringed with shadow and she was
conducting a telephone conversation in a language I could not
identify. Behind her, a half-glass door was closed on what was
presumably her boss’s office. As I stood there, waiting for the woman
to finish her conversation, shadows flitted across the glass, as if there
were people inside, two or three or more. If they were conducting a
meeting, it was completely silent. In fact, as I realized with a chill,
the whole office was acoustically dead. We were in an old building, a
box of quivery joists and planks. Outside was a busy street. It was not
possible. Wearily the secretary cupped the receiver and suggested I
take a seat. Her voice fell without leaving a trace. My panic rising, I
tried to leave but nothing came of it, my will did not translate into
action, and instead of escaping out onto the street I found myself
moving some old copies of Variety and sinking into an armchair.
The chair was snug and dark and deep. I felt like a sleepy child, a
feeling accentuated by the unusual height of its arms, which rose
almost to my shoulders. So I rested my hands on my knees. In my
nose was the scent of rose water, under my feet a thick Persian carpet
into which my broken shoes were sinking like mud. On the walls of
the dark cluttered room I saw posters and handbills, so many. All the
memories of all the theaters, all the stages. A starlet looked out of a
frame made of the text Oh But How She Could Play A Ukelele!
White Tears - Hari KunzruHari Kunzru / text
P. 248
Another was dancing That Egyptian Glide. As the secretary chatted,
in a low murmur suggestive of a conversation with a lover, they
strummed and shimmied. I sank on down until the arms of the chair
were above my head and the room seemed far and I began to grow
suspicious of my sudden sense of ease. Dimly I remembered that I
had no reason to feel easy. On the contrary. My panic rising again, I
struggled back to the surface and stood and moved a stack of papers
from another chair. The secretary watched me without emotion as I
sat down. It was a hard upright chair, a chair in which I thought I
would not be so quick to lose myself. However, another unpleasant
sensation soon arose. I began to feel that something was behind me,
which was not possible, because the back of the chair was against a
wall. This feeling grew until it became a definite presence. Though I
looked round more than once, I could see nothing out of the ordinary
on the patch of wall behind my head, or the back of the chair itself.
Then perhaps my eyes or mind became accustomed to the light,
because the next time I turned, looming over me was a poster in a
gilt frame, the kind made to hang outside a theater. It depicted a
winking black face, a wide grin flowering between white gloved
hands:
Here comes Wolfmouth! Famous Figure of Fun!
A red maw, a tongue like a receding highway, white teeth framing
an enormous darkness. The eye was full of malice. The eye was
turned on me.
—I’m sorry, sir.
Involuntarily, I had already risen to my feet. I could barely hear
the secretary’s small dead voice.
—Mr. Khatchadourian is not available at this time.
I muttered an apology—something about having made a mistake,
not wanting to waste anyone’s time—and backed out towards the
door. If, a few moments before, the poster had depicted Wolfmouth,
now it seemed merely to contain him. He was hanging inside it,
lolling, floating, one leg lazily swinging backwards and forwards like
White Tears - Hari KunzruHari Kunzru / text
P. 249
a pendulum. For now he was a jolly minstrel, taking his rest. At any
second, he might spring into lethal action.
From behind the door of the inner office came the crackle of a
gramophone. I heard two voices, comedians doing a routine.
—Sam you sure am look like you got the miseries.
—The miseries? Why there’s another name for what I got.
I realized the terrible error I’d made, all the errors. The enormity
of my mistakes overwhelmed me. Nothing would ever make up for
them. I turned and fled down the stairs.
I could hear him behind me, Wolfmouth singing out, brimming
with good humor. He followed me down onto the street, loping
behind with an easy stride as I quickened my pace up Fifth Avenue
and through the Garment District, trying to melt into the crowd. I
dodged in and out of office lobbies, through revolving doors. How
hard I tried to shake him, under the flag-flying midtown façades. He
followed me along the great hollow blocks and the tight bustling
blocks. He followed me over a bridge and along the cobbled streets
squeezed under its great pillars, where the sidewalks were checkered
with shadow.
I couldn’t always see him, but he was never far, somewhere just
round the corner, scuffing and shuffling his patent leather shoes,
laughing his great rich hearty laugh. A mouth like a trap. A mouth
you could drive a carriage through. A fearful gap. He followed me
back into the city, through the saltmarshes into the warren of Little
Germany, the tenements by the garment factories. He nipped nimbly
through the crowd of dirty bodies migrating through the Lower East
Side, heading to the bathhouses for their morning ablutions.
Excuse me, excuse me. Into the dark.
Day after day. Always on the move. My boot heels quite worn
away. Wolfmouth only left me alone when I came home at night.
Even then he followed me through the hallways, tap dancing up the
stairs. He followed me, he follows me. Step scuff smack step, step
scuff smack step. Echoing in the stairwell at the end of another long
day.
White Tears - Hari KunzruHari Kunzru / text
P. 250
—The kooks, there are more of them all the time.
—That’s right, Mrs. Waxman.
Carrying my groceries past her door. The stink of her cats.
I hole up, lock the door, fix the chain. Step scuff smack step,
shuffling in the hallway. Then, at last, silence. I am not sure if he
goes away. Chain checked, door double-locked, I sit down at the
kitchen table and write a letter. Some time ago I asked you to send
me your wants and still I have received no list from you. I have
offered to sell the whole collection, which as you know is a
significant one. I urgently need money. Without it I am unable to
complete my plans. When darkness falls there are voices in the
hallway. Other voices. I never open my door to look. Things happen
in the hallway, fearful nameless things. The knife blades work like
pistons, making dead men in the hallway. In the mornings I find
stains, smears on the tile, covered up in newspaper.
When there is water, I fill up containers from the tub. Buckets,
bottles, bowls, placed around the apartment. The burning coal in my
chest sometimes drives me up to the roof, to loiter by the tank, ready
to dive in. Up on the roof there are pigeon lofts and a silt of stolen
purses, half-rotten, rat-eaten. Down below boys pass a bottle, rulers
of the handball court. TITO + SWISS + ANGEL + L’IL MAN +
JESTER + TONY + RICO = DIRTY DOZENS. I can hear them argue.
Puta this, puta that. I can hear Wolfmouth laughing down in the
handball court, dancing the Broadway Shuffle in the street. That big
belly laugh floating upwards in the stairwell, through the hallway,
oozing in under my locked door.
I can’t ever shake him. He follows me through deserted streets,
hiding in doorways when I turn round. I see him in the distance,
sauntering down the ghost blocks in a long coat, swishing past
inscrutable wreckage. Outcroppings of masonry, anonymous piles of
brick. I see him sitting on the fire escape. Sitting on the stoop. Sitting
on an orange crate outside the Fiery Cross Ministries, bumping his
back against the side of a parked car. Leaning on a lamppost at a
windswept intersection. Rolling bones against the curb in a clean
white tee shirt and shiny shoes.
White Tears - Hari KunzruHari Kunzru / text
P. 251
I wait in the alley for the knife, the bat, the lead pipe. My breath
exits in a little plume. His footfalls echo in the stairwells as I climb.
My breath, like ectoplasm. Even in the cold of the night, my chest is
burning. The coal in my chest. The cold. I have to keep writing
letters. There are obstacles in my path. Everything I do seems to be
in vain. This is a betrayal. I understood us to have a good business
relationship. I expect a reply, I urgently expect one, a postcard at
the very least, a simple acknowledgment that you have received my
offer and are considering it. I have exigencies. The records must be
sold. This price is absurdly low anyway. I offer it to you because I
consider you a genuine collector. I believe my terms are more than
reasonable. I have burdens to bear. If I don’t hear from you by the
date above, I won’t be able to wait. You are delaying. Why would
you introduce these difficulties? I absolutely cannot have any more
delays.
All I want is to be able to reason with him. I just need to find out
what it is I’ve done. It’s not fair to blame me for things that took
place long before I was even born. That is what I want to say to him: I
am not the one to blame. But I don’t know to whom I should address
my complaints. Sometimes he is one person, sometimes many. He
goes running, wilding through Central Park. A wolf pack, circling
round, tongues lolling. I have rights, I want to say. I want to say,
what about my rights?
I think my only hope is to outrun him. My only hope was to outrun
him. To outrun him, but I was always slipping into the past. Is to
was. The black mouth gaping, the wolf pack behind, and though I ran
as hard as I could, it made no difference. I found myself slipping ever
further into the dark. I opted to go North. Ultima Thule. The whitest
place. I figured he would have no power there. I took the subway to
the Port Authority Bus Terminal. I had always been on the subway,
heading to the Port Authority Bus Terminal. At the gate I waited
nervously, taking slugs of water from a gallon jug, feeling the eye on
me. Wolfmouth was the beggar in the wheelchair, rattling a can. He
was every one of the young men, hanging around, trying to sell
White Tears - Hari KunzruHari Kunzru / text
P. 252
things. A watch, a transistor radio. I turned away when they came
near. The eye was on me.
All aboard the bus. Pleasure is the headlight, the devil is the driver.
The smeared window glass. The bus pulled away. Outside it had
begun to snow. By the time we reached the expressway, it was
impossible to see. The city had faded into blessed forgetfulness.
—Ain’t no secret to geeks.
The voice like sandpaper, a shock. JumpJim’s claw of a hand on
my back. He was wild and ragged now, wearing sweat pants and
some kind of faded patchwork coat over a tee shirt advertising a
community fish fry. He eased himself into the seat beside me.
—Thing about geeks. Any man will bite the head off of a chicken if
he’s hungry enough or has enough taste for booze. The key is getting
him to understand he’s a geek. You catch my drift?
I shook my head. JumpJim sighed.
—I’m sorry for you, son, really I am, but you ain’t the sharpest tool
in the box. So where is it you think you’re headed now?
—Maine. Further on, probably.
—This bus ain’t going to Maine.
—Yes it is.
He turned and poked a finger into the ribs of a middle-aged
woman hunched into her seat on the opposite side of the aisle.
—Where’s this bus going?
—You don’t know?
—I know. The kid doesn’t know.
—You want me to tell him where the bus is going?
—Give the broad a frickin medal.
—There’s no call to be rude.
—Just tell him.
—Why doesn’t he look on his ticket?
—Jesus, woman. North or south? Is the damn bus going north or
south?
White Tears - Hari KunzruHari Kunzru / text
P. 253
She turned her shoulder to us and pulled up the hood of her jacket,
refusing further conversation. JumpJim gave the finger, doubled
fisted, to her back. I told him I had to use the bathroom, and
reluctantly he let me pass. At the back of the bus, I locked myself in
the coffin-like toilet, bracing myself as the road vibrated underneath.
I tried not to panic. When I came back out, I sat down in another
row. For a few minutes he left me alone. Then he made his way back
to where I was sitting.
—Sulking?
—I’d just rather be on my own.
—Oh you would, would you? Well, that’s all right. We’ll come soon
enough to the parting of the ways. Besides, you need some time to
practice your act.
He did a kind of gnashing mime, which I supposed was biting the
head off a chicken.
—I don’t know what you’re even talking about.
He sat down beside me, nudging me over with his hip.
—What’s your problem? I’m giving you the window. Look, you’re
going to do what Charlie wants, sooner or later. Why not just get it
over with? Bite and spit.
—You think it’s that easy? What does he want? I don’t know what
he wants. If he’d tell me, then maybe I could sort this out.
—You want to reason with him.
—Exactly.
—Man to man. On a level.
—Right.
—You are fucking soft in the head. You think he wants to negotiate
with someone like you? Look at yourself. What have you got to offer?
—I don’t know. I don’t know what he wants. I just want him to
understand that, whatever happened to him, I’m not to blame. He
shouldn’t be picking on me.
—Picking on you? Ha! You should get a tattoo of that one. My
advice: accept it. You’re the horse and he’s the rider. You’re going to
White Tears - Hari KunzruHari Kunzru / text
P. 254
do what he tells you, in the end. Seems bad, probably, but beggars
can’t be choosers and your old uncle Jim is going to give you a way of
looking on the bright side. There’s a great breakfast place down
where you’re going. Hear that? Start your day off right. Steak and
eggs, tamales, they got a hot sauce’ll take the roof of your mouth
clean off. All these fine old pictures on the walls. Convivial scenes
from days gone by.
—Breakfast.
—Catch up, boy. Don’t fret, I’ll give you directions.
He reclined his seat and then twisted round and tried to force it
back further, onto the legs of the person in the row behind. When
banging and straining didn’t produce results, he petulantly folded his
arms and went to sleep.
We traveled for some hours. I leaned my forehead against the
window and watched the road, the signs, the place names passing by,
and I saw that he had been telling the truth. We were heading south,
we had always been heading south. I wondered how I had got on the
wrong bus, the very last bus I wanted. Perhaps there would be a rest
stop where I could get off again. Could I escape without waking him?
If only I could still turn around.
As I explored the mechanics of climbing over him into the aisle,
JumpJim had a coughing fit, which woke him up. He spat into a wad
of tissue paper and peeled off his patchwork coat, releasing a
pungent unwashed odor into the already stale air of the bus.
—Damn bug in my throat. How about you share a little of that
water?
I clutched my jug to my chest. He excavated something from his
nose and flicked it at the sleeping woman, his enemy on the other
side of the aisle.
—OK I’m awake now. Back in the game. You’re kind of a prick, you
know? So, a question. Do you have any idea what the word
miscegenation means?
—Sure.
White Tears - Hari KunzruHari Kunzru / text
P. 255
—Sure, he says. You ever hear of Eddie Lang? No? I always forget
it wasn’t you, it was your friend. Eddie Lang was a guitarist. Born
Salvatore Massaro, in Philly. Played with Paul Whiteman’s band.
Clue’s in the name.
He paused. When I didn’t show any reaction to his joke he
shrugged and carried on.
—No one more sophisticated than Eddie Lang. He played with Bix
on “Singin’ the Blues” for pity’s sakes. Smooth player, total pro,
forget about it. Now, you ever hear of Blind Willie Dunn’s Gin Bottle
Four? Probably not. But you couldn’t get a more downhome name.
That’s got to be some gnarly old bluesman and his pals, am I right?
That’s Lang with Lonnie Johnson. King of the fucking slickers. And
who else is in the band? King Oliver and Hoagy Carmichael. Lonnie
Johnson and King Oliver, Storyville Negro royalty, with Hoagy
Carmichael from Bloomington, Indiana, and Italian Eddie Lang. So
tell me, was that a black thing or a white thing? No, that was music.
—Why are you telling me this?
—Because you need to hear it, you little prick. You got the picture
yet? It’s a business. The record company needed to give it a certain
spin. Salvatore Massaro had to be Blind Willie Dunn because that’s
the only way the product would sell. You and your buddy, mixing it
up, trying to plug into the real like it’s some kind of amplifier. You’re
the worst of them. Looking for that uncut hit. That pure. Fucking
vampires! Why can’t you accept there ain’t no pure. There ain’t no
real. It’s just people.
—Charlie Shaw is real.
—Now this comes out of his mouth. It’s a Greek fucking tragedy up
in here. Yeah, I know. Big bad Charlie Shaw, coming at you out of the
heart of darkness. Sold his soul to the devil, most probably, to learn
to play guitar. So here’s where I get to break it to you that he’s also
twenty-four-carat vaudeville.
—We didn’t make him up. He exists. He’s stalking me. He’s
threatening my life.
—Sorry, does baby need to go to his safe space now?
White Tears - Hari KunzruHari Kunzru / text
P. 256
—He’s messing with me. He’s going to kill me, if the thing in my
chest doesn’t get me first.
—What thing?
—I have a burning. A thing in my chest. Like your friend.
—My what?
—Like Chester Bly. I know what happened to him. The same thing
is happening to me. I’m in danger.
—Like Chester? Sure, like Chester. Well, I don’t think Charlie’s
going to let you fry before he’s finished with you. That’d be a rookie
move. But you need to know something about Charlie. He’s
Wolfmouth Shaw, the Wolfmouth who toured with the medicine
shows. Sure, he knew a lot of black people. That’s how he got it down
so well. The voice, the guitar picking, the dance steps.
—What are you saying?
—You know what I’m saying.
—It’s not true.
—It is so. White as me and you.
—That cannot be true.
He imitated my voice, making it into a vile constipated whine.
—That cannot be true, that cannot be true. Fucking folk collectors,
all the same. Let me tell you the trouble with you people. You hate
the real music, the music that was actually happening, because
you’re so hung up on what you like to call the authentic. A man plays
a lick he learned from a record, you throw him out because he ain’t
authentic enough for you. I arrive in your studio with a spear and a
damn bone through my nose, you’d get down on your knees and pray
to Jesus because there I was and I hadn’t been influenced.
—He can’t be a white man.
He paused, scratching at some eczematic patch buried in his chin
stubble.
—Well, I admit I’m not a hundred percent. Never easy to tell
what’s going on when they’re in the makeup.
White Tears - Hari KunzruHari Kunzru / text
P. 257
He began to splutter with laughter. The laughter turned into a
coughing fit, and he made another lunge for my water jug. I twisted
round to keep it out of his reach. He recovered himself and looked at
me sullenly.
—Fine, just my little joke. So he’s black. Where does that leave
you? Charlie Shaw is a professional entertainer, is all I’m saying. Not
some fucking mud man, crawling out of the primal ooze. And he
ought to get paid.
—For what?
—What does anyone want to get paid for? For the work they’ve
done.
—You act like you know everything, but you’re full of shit. You
don’t know what he wants any more than I do. You don’t even know
what’s on the other side of the record he made.
—About that.
—Yeah, who’s the bigshot collector, now? The one with all the
information. You were desperate to know what was on the other side.
You were begging me to tell you. Well, now I’ll tell you. It’s called
“The Laughing Song.”
I thought he’d be impressed, or at least interested, but he just
made a face and started fishing around in his pockets. Finally he
uncrumpled a piece of paper, a photocopy of some kind of form or
index card, filled in by hand in a scratchy ink pen. Dates, song titles,
timings. On a line headed “location” were the letters SJH.
—What you have here is the log for a recording session that took
place at the Saint James Hotel in Jackson, Mississippi, in November
of 1929. Look at the lineup. Slim Duckett and Pig Norwood. Emmett
Charles. He was a minstrel too, by the way, worked with Daddy
Stovepipe. And you see there, Charlie Shaw.
—His name’s scratched out.
—That’s right. And what does that tell you?
—I don’t know.
—That he didn’t make the session, dumbass. He was down to be
recorded but for whatever reason, it didn’t happen.
White Tears - Hari KunzruHari Kunzru / text
P. 258
—Well, he must have been recorded another time.
—There was no other time. That’s it. That’s the only time Key &
Gate ever recorded in Jackson. All their other sessions were in New
York. I’ve seen those session sheets. All of them. Every last one. I
have a contact, a collector friend. I’ve seen every name, every date.
This is the only time Charlie Shaw comes up anywhere.
—So the crossing out must be a mistake. He made the session. I’ve
heard the record, for God’s sake.
—The record you told me you and your friend cooked up.
—I don’t know. I don’t know why we thought that. It seemed
obvious at the time. I don’t know. I think he must have made the
record. How else could I have heard it?
—Charlie Shaw went to Jackson but he never came back. He
vanished. They scratched his name out of the session log and no one
ever saw or heard of him again. Charlie Shaw never recorded.
—So what was it we put out?
—There’s a question. I got to warn you, when you eat at that
breakfast place, go easy on the hot sauce.
I don’t remember anything after that. Night had long fallen. The
lights in the bus were dimmed. I was exhausted. Headlights
streamed past. Everything was a jumble. Eventually I slept. I was
woken by the driver calling out a stop. The seat beside me was
empty. It was the parting of the ways. JumpJim had gone.
White Tears - Hari KunzruHari Kunzru / text
P. 259
Jackson, Mississippi, where this bus
terminates. Jackson, the air like syrup. The driver throwing down the
cases, sweating under his cap. A big laugh echoing through the bus
station waiting room. Shuffle step, shuffle step. I couldn’t spot him,
though I tried. However many sudden turns I made.
A downtown of brown concrete and squat modern blocks, eighties
money frozen in smoked glass and olive stone cladding. Chemical
freight, tank after tank, moving slow and heavy along tracks running
over the roadway. I walked until I saw the Saint James Hotel, a stern
brick building looming over the boarded-up shop fronts of Farish
Street. Mounted on a scaffold on the roof, the single word HOTEL,
illuminated at night. I was not ready to go there. Around it lay an
obliterated grid, ruins and grassy intersections, weeds growing chesthigh in vacant lots. One solitary store was open, selling hats and
belts. The clerk didn’t think for a minute I would buy anything. In
the distance was the new city. Parking lots, a couple of office
buildings, a high-rise perimeter about a mile away. I climbed
through glassless windows, found sleeping bags, plastic soda bottles
of urine. I saw tags and throwups, many names and signs. Propped
up against a wall was a board with a carefully painted picture of a
pianist, the remnant of some community mural or children’s project,
a smiling jazz man tagged by $eeWeed and $Murda on either side of
his head. I had a camera. I do not know how I came to be carrying it.
While I was taking a picture, my back to the street, I heard
something behind me and turned to catch a glimpse of a man
walking a large black dog. I had no distinct impression of him, but at
the same time I knew who he was. Dark skin, a flash of a white tee
NEXT
STOP.
JACKSON.
White Tears - Hari KunzruHari Kunzru / text
P. 260
shirt. He had been following me as I walked back to the motel where
Leonie died. He had followed me at other times, in other places. Papa
Charlie, guardian of the crossroads, where the two worlds meet.
Excuse me, excuse me, as I step across the threshold…
When I went outside, the street was empty.
I took pictures in the old Palace Auditorium, a treacherous shell of
rotting boards and missing joists. I photographed the Alamo cinema.
I went back out onto the street, and wandered past vacant lots until I
saw a lone building with glass in the windows, occupying one corner
of an intersection. A sign in the front window said Closed, next to a
sticker: Got soul? I was framing the little building amidst the
emptiness, composing my shot.
—I saw you.
I had no idea where she came from.
—I saw you! Poking your nose in.
She was in her sixties, perhaps. A head wrap in red, black and
green, heavy wooden earrings, her arms fiercely folded.
—Who told you you could take photographs?
I said something about the historic blues neighborhood. She rolled
her eyes and turned away.
—Is this your business, ma’am?
—What if it is?
—Is it a music store?
—It is a community bookstore. And it’s closed. And it’s not for you.
—I’m just interested in local history. This was called the Black
Mecca, did you know that?
—Local history. Have mercy. Only two reasons people like you
come down here. The blues or taking pictures of ruins. We’re
fascinating to you, long as we’re safely dead.
—Look, I had nothing to do with whatever happened to your
neighborhood. I’m not the one to blame.
—You for real? Get the hell out of here. People live here.
—I just have some questions.
White Tears - Hari KunzruHari Kunzru / text
P. 261
—I am not obliged to be your goddamn cultural tour guide.
I walked away hurriedly.
—That’s right. Go on. Hipster asshole!
I flinched. Not that she was telling the truth. I’d seen her eyes. Her
empty eyes. No one lived there. She didn’t live there, among the
ruins. She was no more alive than I was. And so I walked away from
Farish Street, out of town, until the city streets became dusty rural
roads running between cotton fields. Sometimes I carried a box of
records. Sometimes I carried a guitar. Finally I came to the old
wooden shack with the peeling pink paint and the barbecue pit in the
yard and the line of expensive cars parked out front.
The smoking skillets of the women in the kitchen, the greasy bills
changing hands. I was shown to a corner table covered in a redcheckered vinyl cloth. I ordered steak and eggs. Plotting was taking
place all around me. Machinations. Allocation of funds. Though the
surroundings were humble, even crude, I saw gold watches,
handmade shoes scuffing the bare board floor. When my food came,
I spooned on the hot sauce and examined the photos on the wall.
Convivial scenes, said JumpJim, and so they were. Smiling fellows in
aprons holding out cuts of meat, groups in sports and military
uniforms. Then I found myself examining the faces of three old men,
sitting, it appeared, in that very corner, sometime in the nineteen
forties or fifties. Three men in their shirtsleeves, with wide silk ties
and prosperous bellies and frosty glass tankards of beer. The caption:
“Big” Jim Wallace, Judge Wilbur Wallace and Jack Wallace: still
rolling along.
I knew those faces, versions of those faces. I’d seen many of those
faces on the family pool house wall. I forgot about food and got up
from the table to look around. Leaning over other diners, I began to
cause annoyance and consternation. I was eventually made to leave,
thrown out physically by a burly cook, but not before I had seen a
photograph of Judge Wilbur as the winner of a 1932 fishing
competition and another, dated 1929 but otherwise uncaptioned,
tucked away on the wall near the bathroom. It was taken high on a
ridge. A river was visible down below. Three white men stood in
White Tears - Hari KunzruHari Kunzru / text
P. 262
postures of ease and authority, one with folded arms, a second with
his hands in his pockets, the third cradling a shotgun. Behind them,
scattered through the frame, were black workers, carrying spades
and picks or paused in the action of wheeling barrows along a
duckboard path. They were dressed in convict’s stripes.
Captain Jim, Captain Jack and Judge Wilbur, up on the levee.
Starting the family firm.
Sprawled in the dirt outside the shack, I could feel the earth rising
up, the cold wet earth of the levee. These were Carter’s people. This
was the earth they came out of. I remembered something Leonie had
said, about grandpa somebody or other moving the family up to DC,
so the firm could bid for Federal Government contracts. Already big
by then, Wallace Construction became a money machine. Then, years
later, the DC children took the next step and moved to New York, to
convert all that capital into culture. An invisible thread connected
Carter and Leonie to Charlie Shaw. I thought of the buildings I had
lived in, the expensive things I had handled and consumed. Whose
work had paid for them? I peered at the faces, the black men with
their picks and shovels, but they were too small, too blurred to
recognize. I could not see if he was one of them.
I walked back into town. Whenever I heard the sound of engines or
saw headlights in the distance, I climbed into the ditch and hid. As I
reached the suburbs, the light began to fail. I walked the blocks until
I saw the red HOTEL sign. As I grew closer, I kept it in view, or
perhaps it kept me in view. The sign seemed to follow me as I walked
the blocks. Sometimes I carried a box of records, sometimes I carried
a guitar. I went to sleep under a carport, picking up my sleeping bag
when the flashing blue lights came around. Later I walked to Farish
Street and found a spot in an abandoned building. I lay, curled up on
a broken-down cardboard box, listening to Wolfmouth prowling in
the alley outside. Step shuffle switch, step shuffle switch. Wolfmouth,
Papa Charlie, Charlie Shaw, crossing the threshold, walking out of
the picture frame. For much of that day, he had left me alone. Now
he seemed closer than ever. As the thought formed in my mind, the
spray-painted walls around me were lit by a flickering light and I sat
White Tears - Hari KunzruHari Kunzru / text
P. 263
up in a state of terror to watch him slowly come cakewalking in, a
lantern in one hand and a silver-tipped cane in the other. He bowed
with a courtly flourish. I could not move. His teeth were like
tombstones, his great mouth ready to swallow me up. He swung his
cane, pointed it at me.
—Sam, you sure am look like you got the miseries.
There was another name for what I’d got. On the floor beside me
was a cracked sliver of mirror. Wolfmouth put the lantern down and
handed me a champagne cork, which he produced from his pocket
like a magician with the card I’d just been thinking of. I started to
burn it on the flame. I had always been burning it on the flame,
turning it round so it seared on all sides, just as I’d done many times
before. Wolfmouth held up the lantern so I could see as I smeared
my face. When I was finished, he examined my work, first one cheek
and then the other, careful not to dirty his white kid gloves. He
laughed his great hearty laugh and stretched like an athlete
limbering up for a race. Then he stuffed his hands into my mouth,
pulling my jaws wide open, then wider still, until I was in
excruciating pain. I tried to scream but I could not, and he stretched
my jaws until they cracked, the top and bottom hanging a whole
hands-width apart. He peered inside like a dentist or a plumber
examining a pipe, then stretched some more. Even that wasn’t
enough for him. He pulled ever wider until he was able to fit, first
one patent-leather pump, then a knee, then a second shoe and a
second knee into my mouth, and finally it was the work of a moment
to climb inside entirely and disappear down my gullet like an eel
down a chute. My jaws snapped back in place. Now I was the horse
and he was the rider.
Somewhere near the river. Frogs croak from a swamp at the edge
of the field where we’re set up. Kerosene torches spit and gutter at
the four corners of the stage.
Spat spit. Spitting, guttering. I am sitting by the tent, as I always
do, and as always a crowd of white children is watching as I put on
the greasepaint and the cork. I make my eyes wide, my mouth wider.
I show my pearly white teeth. I make them squeal and run.
White Tears - Hari KunzruHari Kunzru / text
P. 264
The comedian comes on, to tell the story about the loyal old slave
who got lost in the war.
—Lord I am Found Again! I done brought you a whole mess o’new
niggers, Marse George! Some folks tell me dey is free, but I know dey
b’long ter Marse George.
Putting on the burnt cork. Age of seventeen years, singing “He’s In
The Jailhouse Now” before the pitch doctor comes on to sell his
Congo salve. The learned professor has consented to share with you a
secret discovered at peril of his life! Purifies the blood and cleanses
the stool!
I left after a season. I could not hear myself anymore. I could not
see myself in the mirror.
White Tears - Hari KunzruHari Kunzru / text
P. 265
LET ME BE CLEAR. I PLAY TWO KINDS OF MUSIC. God’s and the other
kind. That is to say I play both sides. Sunday picnics and work
camps. All the different kinds of camp. Logging camps, levee camps,
places where they’ll kill a man and step over his body to get to the
barrelhead. Ruled by the knife and the whip and the gun. Turpentine
in Louisiana and coal in Alabama. Cane on the Brazos River in Texas.
It’s all the same, the whole country one big camp. They are making
dead men in camps all over this land. No one bats an eye.
Since I was a child I could always play, always find the thread of
what I was feeling and follow it up and down the strings. I grew up
playing rags and jigs and whatnot for Mister Billy, as he sat in a
rocker on his porch and slapped his fat thigh in time. When you play
music you don’t always have to work. I teamed up with a pianist in
Memphis and we made money then. But I worked too. I picked on
Mister Billy’s farm. I cut willow and drove a team. I did all those
things at one time or another. There were years I stayed in one place.
The Choctaw mounds by the river, the glitter of the water sliding by.
Time slowed down. But I was a rounder, born to roam. I had a little
girl in Greenville, another in Natchez. I found it easy to say goodbye,
easier not to say goodbye at all. I rode buses and trains. On Farish
Street I built a reputation as a slick young sheik, in any game you
care to name, a winner. When I smiled, everyone smiled back
because I was so damn pretty. Farish Street, the Black Mecca, the
shining beacon of the race. My shiny shoes. I never stayed at the
Saint James Hotel. I never shut one of those heavy wooden doors
behind me, the doors with the brass numbers, never shut the door
and lay down and went to sleep on clean white cotton sheets that
White Tears - Hari KunzruHari Kunzru / text
P. 266
smelled of lavender. There were black-owned boardinghouses
around Farish Street. The musicians all stayed in those, when we
came in to town.
Sometimes I played on street corners. I played outside a general
store. I played outside a Chinese laundry.
Oh what a beautiful city
Oh what a beautiful city
Twelve gates to the city, hallelujah
There was a café. There was a furniture store. A tailor. A Frosty
Freeze ice cream. People in from all over, farmers in their overalls,
gawping at the windows. There was a music store. Speir, the man’s
name was. H.C. Speir. A white man. It was a long dark narrow store.
Four listening booths, two white, two colored. Racks and boxes of
records behind the counter. In the front window, he’d fixed a black
rubber snake to a phonograph turntable, so that when the handle
was cranked, the snake jumped and juggled, rearing up like it was
about to strike. Everybody loved the black snake. Kids, everyone.
Speir knew how to draw people. Every day someone was out in front
of his place with a guitar or a fiddle, trying to catch his eye. If he
liked your music, he could get you twenty-five dollars to do a
recording session. That was a generally known fact.
I played for Mr. Speir and he told me I was good and to come back
in a month when he would give me an answer. In that time I rode
clear to Birmingham and back, playing every night. The people loved
me. They put money in my pocket and hollered for more. You’re in
luck, Speir said, when I turned up at his door. You won’t have to go
nowhere. They gone come to you. He showed me a telegram. HAVE
SHAW AND PARTNER IF HE HAS ONE REPORT DIRECT TO SJH TEN AM TUE
6 AUGUST I CAN’T BE THERE COHN AND ENGLAND WILL HANDLE. Ten
dollars, he said. Not twenty-five, but enough. And all the dreams of
what might happen after that. The train car with my name on the
side. The silk suits.
White Tears - Hari KunzruHari Kunzru / text
P. 267
I did have a partner at one time. Went by Guitar Jimmy. Boy had
talent. I never seen him learn a song, it was like he already knew. Any
kind. Polka, Irish, you name it. He just had to put the hat down and
they’d drop the money right in. Guitar Jimmy or Jimmy Clean. You
could walk all day in the summer heat and he looked like he just
stepped out of a limousine. Together we were free. No man to tell us
where or when or how. You could finish playing at two and he’d wake
you at three saying I heard a train, let’s get on it. And we would. We
were under nobody’s command. One time we were staying at a
boardinghouse in Evansville, burned down in the night with our
guitars inside. Burned right to the ground. We started up Sixty-one,
walking. He had a harmonica, started blowing it with me singing.
People stopped their cars to give us dollar bills. By the time we
reached Clarksdale we had enough to buy ourselves new guitars.
That’s just how it was with me and Jimmy. But he liked pussy and
that was his undoing. Some woman, her man found him, shot him
with a forty-four right in the side. Right through his lung. I see him
in the kingdom. I hope to see Jimmy there.
I know exactly to the moment when my own luck ran out. There
was a woman over the river in Arkansas. When she call, you better
come. She fix you so you come. That woman call me and told me to
sing for her. She was powerful. She could have a man rolling on the
floor, walking like a hog. I sang to her about money and good fortune
and the suit of clothes a woman in Memphis promised me if only I
would stay with her just one more night. Her husband’s suit of
clothes. The granny woman was tickled by that one, so she made me
a conjure hand, but I lost it and after that I couldn’t get along. I lost
the hand she made for me, just left that little root bag on the sink in a
bus station bathroom. I don’t know why. I was riding away before I
knew. After that, everything I did seemed to be in vain.
So by the time the recording session came around, I was a worried
young rounder with a troublesome mind. I could not sleep and I
could not eat. I knew all my power had been in that hand. I knew I
ought not to go to Jackson, but all the same I waited for the Yellow
Dog to take me there, sitting outside the Moorhead depot playing my
White Tears - Hari KunzruHari Kunzru / text
P. 268
guitar. Something must have stopped my ears, because I never even
heard the train coming. No way I wouldn’t have heard it, unloading
its cargo and taking on more. No way I wouldn’t have heard that
whistle blow, but it happened. I ran and watched it pull away down
the track, and right then I could feel it, the jinx, slipping round my
ankles like a cat. I thought I was doing OK when I got a ride most of
the way on a truck, but those boys were making a delivery at a farm
and I had to walk the last four or five miles into town. That way took
me through a white neighborhood, where it was not safe to be on the
street after sundown. Though the light was failing, I didn’t feel
afraid. I had cash money and a letter from the Key & Gate Recording
Laboratories in New York City, inviting me to Jackson’s famous Saint
James Hotel to make a disk of my music. I was a young man, young
enough to believe in the power of my charm. Then the policeman
drew up beside me in his big Ford car.
There was a lot of dust on the roads. I was tired from walking. My
clothes were dirty. Sweat on my brow. Maybe I seemed like a vagrant
to him. I told him everything, about the money, the letter. Boy, he
said. You look like a ghost.
If you ever go to Jackson, better walk straight. You better not
stumble and you better not fall.
—Where you going, Sam?
—Farish Street, sir.
—Farish Street? That’s a long way from here. You sure are in the
wrong part of town.
He told me to get in the car. And I did. After that came nothing
good.
A dark night in a jail cell and no sleep. They took away my guitar. I
never saw that guitar again. In the morning I was shackled to a long
chain with five other men and taken to the courthouse. The very day
I was supposed to be recording. Judge Wilbur Wallace presiding,
under the cool breeze of an electric fan. Anderson, Solomon; Boyle,
James; Hardy, Charles; Hill, Isaac; Jackson, Thomas; Mitchell,
White Tears - Hari KunzruHari Kunzru / text
P. 269
Edwin; Shaw, Charles. They called my name and found me guilty of
vagrancy, fined me a hundred dollars.
—You got a hundred dollars, boy?
—No sir.
—Declared unable to pay and so remitted to J.J.W. Wallace
Construction for one year in lieu.
Ten of us they sentenced that morning, everyone the same. Judge
Wilbur, on behalf of the thrifty state of Mississippi, set us all to work
for his brothers on the levee. Then he broke for lunch.
And just like that, I was thrown into silence and darkness. Never to
have my voice recorded. Never to be remembered, never known for
who I was or how I could play. Instead of going to the Saint James
Hotel to take my first step into history I was driven in a wagon to a
camp on the river up near Rosedale, almost within sight of Mister
Billy’s farm. They took me there and put me to work.
White Tears - Hari KunzruHari Kunzru / text
P. 270
CAPTAIN JACK AND CAPTAIN JIM were the riding bosses. Walking boss
was a man called Ferguson, work you from can to can’t. First light till
you drop, rolling your wheeler and dumping the earth, all in the
Mississippi summer heat. Only word Captain Jack ever spoke to me
was I don’t like your look. You better watch out, he said. My eye’s on
you. The Wallace brothers had camps all up and down the river by
then, building the levee back up after the great flood. Everybody
knew them. There were songs about the Wallaces. They were on their
way up. Boys, Big Jim would say, when he came around. You ought
to be proud. You working for the US Government now.
I once watched Jack Wallace go wild on a man. Just got down off
his horse and beat him with a pick handle until he stopped twitching.
We laid the body down in the levee and we rolled our wheelers and
covered him up with earth.
All day from can to can’t. Up at first light, knowing there’s nothing
until sundown but heat and mud. Knowing I ought to have been
sliding down Farish Street in my sharp suit, followed by female eyes.
I never knew how many of us Jack Wallace put down in the levee.
They say he once shot a mercy man for telling him not to work some
broke-shouldered mule. He didn’t like to hear the word no.
Not all of us were convicts. Some were even getting pay, just
enough money in the pocket to gamble and visit the whores who
pitched their tents down below. Sally and Suzie calling who wants
me, waving at the river, waving at men on boats. The stink of that
camp. The fever in that camp. A kitchen tent, a mess, a commissary,
a hog pen, a barrelhouse, a corral of mules and tents for the men.
White Tears - Hari KunzruHari Kunzru / text
P. 271
They chained twenty of us bad ones together when we slept. Others
could come and go. You tied up and someone wants to cut you or
fuck your ass, not a damn thing you can do. The knife blades
working, making another dead man while I squeeze my eyes tight,
hoping they don’t come for me.
Captain Jack rolling down to the water trough to tell his little joke.
—Nigger dies get another, mule dies I got to buy another.
That was his joke. My heart was full of hate for Jack Wallace. I
polished my hate-filled heart like a precious stone.
I did not deserve this.
Went to the Captain with my hat in my hand
Went to the Captain with my hat in my hand
Said Captain have mercy on a long time man
Well he look at me and he spit on the ground
He look at me and he spit on the ground
Says I’ll have mercy when I drive you down
I had a mouth, they said. No one liked a coon with a mouth. I
worked. I rolled. I dumped the earth. And I knew that if one
afternoon I fell in the heat, Captain Jack would set to until I died or
got up again. Every day that awful morning bell. You wake up and for
a moment you forget where you are. Only for a moment. And always
the fines for falling behind, talking back. Everything you do they add
days or dollars. And you got no dollars so they add days. That’s how
they do. That’s how they drive you down.
White Tears - Hari KunzruHari Kunzru / text
P. 272
BECAUSE NO ONE REMEMBERS ME and no one living will ever hear my
music, because I am down in the levee where it is cold and dark. How
did it take me? What difference does it make? Typhoid. Heat stroke.
An accident, my body broken or cut or crushed. Captain Jack,
looking down on me, telling me to get back to work. Captain Jack
with the whip and the gun.
I’m tired, I say. Me and some of the others. We’re tired. We want
to sit down and rest.
—Plenty of rest where I’ll send you.
We are all down on the ground, lying or sitting. Captain Jack
waves off the water boy, who is trying to give us a drink, and walks
up behind the man next to me and takes out his forty-four. Don’t
even hesitate, just blows the side of his head off. It sprays all over
me, brains and blood. The world is quiet. My lips move but there is
no sound. Just a high whine in my ear. Oh, please don’t do me like
you do poor Shine. Don’t do me.
The end is the same, however it comes. They lay me down and
cover me in the cold dark earth. Lay me down in the mud with hate
in my heart. I ought to have made that session, ought to have walked
through the door of the Saint James Hotel. Instead I’m twenty-seven
years old and rotting in the levee with hate in my heart. Starless
desolation in my heart. I was never paid for the whip and the gun,
never paid for the work I done. Hate in my heart that can never die
because no one will ever hear my music and no one even remembers
my name. But I turn out to be stronger than death. The record I
never got to make is out there, at least sometimes, for those that have
White Tears - Hari KunzruHari Kunzru / text
P. 273
ears to hear. I put it there. I kept pushing it out. And now I have
found a horse to ride. This boy. This weak boy. I have found a way
back up into the world.
So I look through his eyes, early one morning, and we wake up on
the levee and stare down at a great gray mass of moving water. I am
up on the levee, thinks the boy. I am in a bus. I am waiting for a bus,
my clothes inexplicably covered in mud. I walk and ride and walk
again. In slow stages I make my way back to the city. Far away I can
see the sign, the red illuminated sign saying HOTEL. When I get there,
I walk up the front steps like Saint James himself. I do not go round
to the kitchen entrance. I have a right to be there. I am keeping an
important appointment with the gentlemen from the Key & Gate
Recording Laboratories. The lobby is bustling. Middle-aged men
walk to and fro with conference passes on lanyards. On either side of
the entrance doors stand a pair of banners, the vertical kind that
come with a lightweight metal stand. The 33rd Annual Congress of
the American Federation of Incarceration Service Providers. Girls
in conference tee shirts are handing out flyers.
—Just over there is the registration table where you can pick up
your packet.
—I have a letter. Mr. Speir sent me.
That hard face getting out of the elevator, its expression set and
bland. Cornelius Wallace, as I live and breathe. A circle of men
surround him as he walks through the lobby, shaking hands,
stopping once to have his picture taken with a man in a police
uniform. I call out to him.
—Cornelius? Corny?
He looks in my direction, frowns, then turns away.
—Yeah, that’s right. Pretend you don’t see me. I know you see me. I
know you, Corny Wallace. I know you can see me.
People are staring. Men with conference passes on lanyards.
—I know about your family. About how you made your money.
Security people converge on me. Do I hold a delegate’s pass? No?
They think it would be best if I leave. No, it is not a public event.
White Tears - Hari KunzruHari Kunzru / text
P. 274
They don’t care about my letter. I am in the lobby. I am out on the
street. I am walking up the front steps of the Saint James Hotel,
carrying my guitar. The doorman, dark as I am, won’t let me any
further. He looks at me like I’m crazy for even wanting to try. I have
to go through the alley, past the trash cans, into the stink. My clothes
are fine. The alley does not touch me. It is an old guitar, the varnish
worn away on the back, the neck repaired more than once. The
doorman makes me turn down the alley and this is how I make my
way into the Saint James Hotel. Through the kitchen and up the back
stairs. The room the record company has hired is at the end of a
corridor where guests won’t walk past. Discreet. They’ve put a row of
wooden chairs outside. Two other Negroes are already waiting, a
man and a woman. He has a banjo, on her lap is a tambourine. We
nod at each other. No one wants to risk a conversation. This is not
our place. A word wrong here and there could be consequences. The
door is half-open, and I see two white men sitting in front of an
electrical box, wearing headphones. One smiles at me in a welcoming
way. The other comes out and shakes my hand, calling me Mister
Shaw. I look around to check no one else has heard. They are from
New York City. They don’t know how to behave. He hands me a
printed sheet of paper.
Walxr (part of the Wallace Magnolia Group) is a leading
provider of detention, correctional and community
reentry services with 58 facilities, approximately 25,500
beds, and 8,000 employees around the globe. Walxr
operates in the United States, Canada, Israel, the United
Kingdom, Australia and Afghanistan. Our goal is to
assist our clients in serving those assigned to their care
through provision of high-quality cost-effective
solutions, including design, construction and financing
of state and federal prisons, detention centers and
community reentry facilities as well as the provision of
community supervision services, using advanced
networked monitoring technologies.
White Tears - Hari KunzruHari Kunzru / text
P. 275
There are two rooms together, a kind of suite. One is the control
room where Mister Zachary and Mister Joel sit. Wires go under the
connecting door to a microphone on a stand. You sit in the far corner
of the room and face the microphone. You sit facing into the corner
like a naughty schoolboy. They say it’s better for the sound. It’s like
singing for yourself, without caring if anyone’s listening. They’re
friendly in a way that makes me nervous, a way that could rub other
people up wrong. Mister Shaw. You don’t call a Negro mister. They
say it gives us ideas.
I sing the first number. Right away, they tell me they liked it and I
should do it again. This time they will be recording.
I sit facing in to the wall. I finish one song and take a sip of water. I
try to read their expressions. What they like and what they don’t.
What song shall I sing next? Which kind of song?
—No more of those church numbers, Charlie. What else you got?
—I got the other kind. I know a lot of songs.
And I sing into the microphone, not too close, bet they thought
they’d have to show me how. Just because I never had the chance
before, doesn’t mean I don’t know. And the sound goes down the
wire to the recording box and the vibrating needle writes it on their
wax disk. The two white men in headphones, listening and nodding
and smiling at me. A white envelope with a ten dollar bill. And they
take the wax disk away and shut it carefully in a case and drive it off
somewhere and press a record on marbled shellac and the record
sells and later I have to go to Mr. Speir’s to have my portrait made
and I wear a good suit with wide lapels and well-shined shoes and I
hold a brand-new rosewood guitar. It is the portrait I will use when I
become a name, a household word, when they advertise my records
in the newspaper and the rich invite me to dine and I take a
steamship to France to sing for the crown heads.
Mister Zachary and Mister Joel glance at their watches.
—Looks like he ain’t coming.
—On a drunk, probably. Speir said he was the type. OK, scratch
him. Who else we got out there?
White Tears - Hari KunzruHari Kunzru / text
P. 276
And just like that, I am gone. Never to be remembered. Never to be
spoken of again. My voice, the way I bend a string, the way I can play
a bassline with my thumb, filling in a melody with my other fingers
so that it sounds like two or even three players at once. No one has
my style, my particular style. And just like that it is gone, vanished
into the past.
I go back to the boardinghouse. The red sign blazes over the roof
line. In my stifling little room that does not smell of lavender I
change clothes and make my way back along Farish Street and down
a side alley by the Saint James Hotel. I go down the alley, with the
dented trash cans and the rotten smell. This is the way they make me
come in. I enter through the kitchen, past the chefs shouting orders
and slamming trays into ovens, the waiters pinning tickets to a
board. And no one notices me, because in my white shirt and black
pants I look like one of them. A valued team member. A faceless face.
So no one questions me in the kitchen. No one pays attention when I
pick up a steak knife and step through the swing doors into the
service corridor.
In the lobby a cocktail party is taking place. The lights are low.
Middle-aged corrections officers network with service providers in
the romantic light. There is Cornelius Wallace, shaking more hands,
then taking a phone call, breaking away from the party and heading
to the elevator. I get in beside him. He sees my uniform. That is all he
sees. Someone like him never really sees someone like me. He gets
out on a high floor and I wait for a moment, until the elevator doors
start to shut, then I follow him along the corridor. I stay a few paces
behind. If he knows I am there, he pays no attention. Cornelius,
fiddling with a keycard, pushing it into the lock. As he opens the
door, I come up behind him and shove him inside.
Something breaks. My knife seeks Corny’s back, finds only air.
Blade cutting through smoke. I am elsewhere, in some other time
and place. My eyes take a moment to adjust. Through the haze I see a
well-furnished suite, a green baize card table laid out with an ashtray
and a tray of fresh glasses, as if later on there is going to be a game. A
White Tears - Hari KunzruHari Kunzru / text
P. 277
man is sitting in an armchair, next to a standing lamp. He wears oldfashioned lace-up boots under his seersucker suit.
—We’re stag here, so we can afford to relax a little.
The room is full of cigar smoke. I cannot see his face. Then he
moves and the light catches him and I see it is Jack Wallace. There
are other people in the shadows. Big Jim Wallace, Carter’s father,
Don. Wilbur, the judge. All the generations here and now. Cornelius
stands at the back, whispering in the ear of another man I don’t
know. Time is flattened here in the back room. Tight collars are
loosened. A discreet button on the pants. Drinks are poured, though
not for me. Jack Wallace sighs.
—Look, son. The Judge and I were thinking that there must be a
way to work things out. You seem very agitated.
He gestures with his cigar at the knife in my hand. The Judge
nods.
—You’re right, Jack. He looks upset. What’s on your mind, son?
I am dead. I am down in the levee.
—Probably not anymore. Flood control system’s been upgraded
several times since then.
One or two of them laugh at that. What happened to me did not
happen. For me, it happened, but somehow they remember it
differently or don’t remember it at all. Whatever I tell them, it will
always slip their minds. Your family made a fortune, I say, because
money is what they understand. They talk to each other. They pour
more drinks. When I speak I am not speaking. When I speak, it dies
away into silence. Still, I carry on, because dimly I am aware that this
is only a screen, and something else is happening behind it,
something I am unable to look upon directly. Captain Jack carries on
in a bantering tone.
—Seems like you’re hung up on the old days, trapped in the past. A
lot of things happened back then that—well, let’s just say those were
different times.
The Judge leans forward, the ice cubes clinking in his glass.
White Tears - Hari KunzruHari Kunzru / text
P. 278
—It’s a post-racial America now. The only thing we care about is
supervision.
He wags an instructing finger.
—You don’t have to work ’em anymore. You don’t have to walk the
line with a rifle. All you got to do is get them into the system. Don’t
matter how you do it. Speeding ticket. Public nuisance. Once they’re
in, your boot is on their neck. Fines, tickets, court fees. And if they
can’t pay, well. Days or dollars, one or the other. Either way, we get
ours and they stay in their rightful place. Same as it ever was. So put
down the knife, son. There’s no purpose to it. You can’t kill
something that ain’t got no head.
Big Jim Wallace moves his bulk through the veil of cigar smoke
towards a phonograph, a substantial upright walnut chest sitting in
the corner of the room. I had not noticed it before.
—Enough talking, let’s play some music.
He slips a 78 out of a paper sleeve and angles it towards me to
show the label.
—This is what you want to hear, right?
I shake my head.
—Sure you do. It’s about balance. Fairness. You ought to hear our
side of the record.
The needle hits the groove, and into the room rises crackle and
hiss. Then all I hear is laughter, hollow, forced, mechanical,
accompanied by a jaunty piano. It is the sound of a body undergoing
discipline. It is the sound of someone who has been told to jump and
is trying to work out how high. Charlie Shaw’s laughter, my laughter.
It is the most terrifying sound I have ever heard.
ha ha ha ha
ha ha ha ha
ha ha ha ha
ha ha ha ha
ha ha ha ha
ha ha ha ha
White Tears - Hari KunzruHari Kunzru / text
P. 279
ha ha ha ha
ha ha ha ha
ha ha ha ha
ha ha ha ha
ha ha ha ha
ha ha ha ha
ha ha ha ha
ha ha ha ha
ha ha ha ha
ha ha ha ha
ha ha ha ha
ha ha ha ha
ha ha ha ha
ha ha ha ha
ha ha ha ha
ha ha ha ha
ha ha ha ha
ha ha ha ha
ha ha ha ha
ha ha ha ha
ha ha ha ha
ha ha ha ha
ha ha ha ha
ha ha ha ha
ha ha ha ha
ha ha ha ha
ha ha ha ha
ha ha ha ha
ha ha ha ha
ha ha ha ha
ha ha ha ha
White Tears - Hari KunzruHari Kunzru / text
P. 280
ha ha ha ha
ha ha ha ha
ha ha ha ha
ha ha ha ha
ha ha ha ha
ha ha ha ha
ha ha ha ha
ha ha ha ha
ha ha ha ha
ha ha ha ha
ha ha ha ha
ha ha ha ha
ha ha ha ha
ha ha ha ha
ha ha ha ha
ha ha ha ha
ha ha ha ha
ha ha ha ha
ha ha ha ha
ha ha ha ha
ha ha ha ha
ha ha ha ha
ha ha ha ha
ha ha ha ha
ha ha ha ha
ha ha ha ha
ha ha ha ha
ha ha ha ha
ha ha ha ha
ha ha ha ha
ha ha ha ha
White Tears - Hari KunzruHari Kunzru / text
P. 281
ha ha ha ha
ha ha ha ha
ha ha ha ha
ha ha ha ha
ha ha ha ha
ha ha ha ha
ha ha ha ha
ha ha ha ha
ha ha ha ha
ha ha ha ha
ha ha ha ha
ha ha ha ha
ha ha ha ha
ha ha ha ha
ha ha ha ha
ha ha ha ha
ha ha ha ha
ha ha ha ha
ha ha ha ha
ha ha ha ha
ha ha ha ha
ha ha ha ha
ha ha ha ha
ha ha ha ha
ha ha ha ha
ha ha ha ha
ha ha ha ha
ha ha ha ha
ha ha ha ha
ha ha ha ha
ha ha ha ha
White Tears - Hari KunzruHari Kunzru / text
P. 282
ha ha ha ha
ha ha ha ha
ha ha ha ha
ha ha ha ha
ha ha ha ha
ha ha ha ha
ha ha ha ha
ha ha ha ha
ha ha ha ha
ha ha ha ha
ha ha ha ha
ha ha ha ha
ha ha ha ha
ha ha ha ha
ha ha ha ha
ha ha ha ha
ha ha ha ha
ha ha ha ha
ha ha ha ha
ha ha ha ha
ha ha ha ha
ha ha ha ha
ha ha ha ha
ha ha ha ha
ha ha ha ha
White Tears - Hari KunzruHari Kunzru / text
P. 283
HOW I FOUND MYSELF ON THE FRONT STEPS of the Saint James Hotel,
covered in blood, is not something I know how to speak about. I was
dazed, like a man emerging from an anesthetic. The world was new
and I was slick and red in the flashing light, looking out at the
horrified faces, at the guns pointed, all on me, all down on me. I
wondered how I could have done the things I remembered, the
chopping and the carving and the slicing and the sawing and the
cutting.
Cornelius going back up to his room. Pushing him inside. Begging
me, backing away. My blade working like a piston, making a dead
man, dragging his corpse into the bathroom. I changed into one of
his shirts, a clean shirt, crisp and white. I put the DO NOT DISTURB
sign out on the door handle and went looking for the parents.
Carter was only the gate through which it walked. Carter paid the
price. Throwing himself at the darkness, begging to be torn up. I was
not to blame. Carter opened the gate through which it walked into
me. For the first time my way was clear. I stalked the corridors and
the ground was steady under my feet. No stones in my passway,
nothing to trip me up, except the drunk by the elevator, angling for
conversation. You have any of those little shrimp appetizers at the
cocktail party? Where you in from? Want to go get a nightcap at the
bar? I told him I had no time to talk.
Another floor, another empty corridor. The repeated pattern in the
carpet marching away in either direction. I knocked on the heavy
wooden door.
—Room service.
White Tears - Hari KunzruHari Kunzru / text
P. 284
Candy Wallace opening it, wearing a toweling hotel robe. A little
crest embroidered on the breast. Don lying on the bed, a pair of
reading glasses balanced on his nose. Candy and Don, safe in their
white cocoon. Don, did you order food, she asked.
I spared them nothing. My blade, working. I could not hear the
screams, the pleading. All the time I was in another room, far away
in the past, listening to that dreadful laughter. And then the blue
lights came and I was returned to myself, drenched in blood, sitting
on the front steps of the hotel, as the police circled wide around me
with their guns.
Believe I buy a graveyard of my own
Believe I buy me a graveyard of my own
Put my enemies all down in the ground
Charlie watched me, sitting there. A skinny white boy, covered in
blood. All ridden out. If I’d been black they probably would have shot
me, just put me down right there and then. Instead they hung a coat
round my shoulders as they led me to the car.
White Tears - Hari KunzruHari Kunzru / text
P. 285
WHEN YOU LISTEN TO AN OLD RECORD, there can be no illusion that
you are present at a performance. You are listening through a gray
drizzle of static, a sound like rain. You can never forget how far away
you are. You always hear it, the sound of distance in time. But what is
the connection between the listener and the musician? Does it matter
that one of you is alive and one is dead? And which is which?
Living things are those which resist entropy. They possess a
boundary of some kind, a membrane or a skin; a metabolism; the
ability to react to the world. And to make copies. To pass something
on. That’s all Charlie Shaw wanted, to reach forward, to obey the
urge of life. I have made no copies. I am a punctum, an end. A point,
not a line. I do not know if I have ever been alive. How would I tell?
Where in the living creature does life actually lie? No single part of a
cell is alive. And life itself is just an aggregate of non-living processes,
chemical reactions cascading, birthing complexity. There is no clear
border between life and non-life. Once you realize that, so much else
unravels. Death walked into me through Carter, but even before that
I’m not sure. My blameless suburban childhood and its small pains:
none of it felt real to me. And then I brought death back to those I
loved, to Leonie, to Carter. I thought I wanted life, but maybe that’s
not true. Maybe I never wanted it, was never even capable of wanting
it. And now I am here. If this is not hell, it is what comes before it, its
antechamber, its downward slope.
The irony, of course, is that in here skin is everything. The color
line is absolute. You may not believe in race, but in prison it believes
in you. I am supposed to stand with the white man and I have not
White Tears - Hari KunzruHari Kunzru / text
P. 286
done that. Here I am the lowest of the low. They have abused me in
every possible way.
On your record deck, you played the sound of the middle passage,
the blackest sound. You wanted the suffering you didn’t have, the
authority you thought it would bring. It scared you, but you thought
of the swagger it would put in your walk, the admiring glances of
your friends. Then came the terror when real darkness first seeped
through the walls of your bedroom, the walls designed to keep you
safe and dreaming. And finally your rising sense of shame when you
admitted to yourself that you were relieved the walls were there. The
shame of knowing that you would do nothing, that you would allow it
all to carry on.
That is not me. I had darkness enough already. Carter was the one.
I never wanted the authority of suffering—I suspected it would have
a bitter taste. The needle vibrates, punctures my face just below my
left eye. The tattooist’s homemade gun is powered by a motor from
an old CD player. The ink is made out of soot. Four tears, one each
for Carter, Leonie and their parents. I listen to the buzz of the motor
and think of what I learned by listening through the crackle and hiss,
into the past: they either add dollars or days and if you don’t have
dollars, all you have to give is days.
White Tears - Hari KunzruHari Kunzru / text
P. 287
ACKNOWLEDGMENTS
I would like to thank the John Simon Guggenheim Foundation,
without whose support this book would not have been written. I owe
a debt to many writers, scholars and collectors, but the work of
Douglas A. Blackmon, Marybeth Hamilton, Michael Taft and Bryan
Wagner has been particularly important. I’d also like to thank
Herman Bennett, Sasha Frere-Jones, Chris King, Amanda Petrusich,
Michael Zilkha and Katie Kitamura, my first and best reader. Above
all, I would like to acknowledge the singers, poets and musicians
whose artistry flows through the blues tradition, particularly those
whose names have been lost.
White Tears - Hari KunzruHari Kunzru / text
P. 288
A NOTE ABOUT THE AUTHOR
Born in London, Hari Kunzru is the author of the novels
The Impressionist, Transmission, My Revolutions and
Gods Without Men, as well as a short story collection,
Noise, and a novella, Memory Palace. He was a 2008
Cullman Fellow at the New York Public Library, a 2014
Guggenheim Fellow and a 2016 Fellow of the American
Academy in Berlin. He lives in New York City.
White Tears - Hari KunzruHari Kunzru / text
P. 289
An Alfred A. Knopf Reading Guide
White Tears by Hari Kunzru
The questions, discussion topics, and reading list that follow are
intended to enhance your reading group’s conversation about White
Tears, Hari Kunzru’s dark and powerful novel about two young men
whose lives are forever changed by the discovery of a forgotten blues
record.
Discussion Questions
1. In the first chapter of White Tears, Seth describes listening to a
field recording, saying he felt “I was slipping, that if I wasn’t
careful I’d lose my grip on the present and find myself back
there, seventy or eighty years in the past” (this page). How do
the temporal shifts in the novel often blur the lines of reality or
destabilize the narrative? How are Seth’s experiences with blues
records—in particular, listening to Charlie Shaw—otherworldly?
2. When Seth meets Carter, he is “in awe of” him (this page). Did
you find Carter magnetic? How does Seth’s personality change
as a result of their friendship? Does Carter’s relative ease in
navigating the world embolden Seth to become more confident?
3. On this page, Seth states, “We really did feel that our love of the
music bought us something, some right to blackness, but by the
time we got to New York, we’d learned not to talk about it.”
What do you think this “right to blackness” means? How does it
White Tears - Hari KunzruHari Kunzru / text
P. 290
mirror Chester Bly’s attitude? Do you think anyone can claim a
“right” to a heritage that is not his own?
4. On this page, Seth states, “There is a place I sometimes go to
where no value attaches to anything. The world is flat. One
sensation is exactly equal to the next.” At what points in the
novel do we see Seth retreat into this attitude? What are the
consequences of his doing so?
5. Carter describes himself as “disinherited” from his family, but
Seth and his trip to the Wallace summer home reveal the
situation is not that simple. How would you describe Carter’s
relationship with Cornelius? Leonie?
6. Discuss Seth’s first impression of Leonie. How does his
understanding of her change over time? Do you think that
Leonie ever possesses any romantic feelings towards Seth? Is
theirs a love story, or not?
7. The character introduced as “JumpJim” acts as a narrative
bridge between the present and the past. How does Kunzru use
JumpJim to provide context for the record’s history?
8. White Tears weaves together the past and the present in a
manner that resists narrative convention. How does this
movement create a heightened sense of danger in the novel?
How does the vacillation between narrative perspectives
contribute to the frenzied, nightmare-like tone of the second
half of the novel?
9. How is systemic racism addressed over the course of the novel?
What does Kunzru’s use of temporal shifts assert about the
existence of racism in this country today?
10. Discuss the dual plotlines of the road trips taken by Chester
Bly/JumpJim and Seth/Leonie. How do both groups navigate
their time in the South? When is their privilege most apparent?
White Tears - Hari KunzruHari Kunzru / text
P. 291
How does each trip explore the fraught history of race relations
in the American South?
11. The scene in which Chester meets Charlie Shaw’s sister is a
pivotal moment in White Tears. How does the idea of
“ownership” of black music come into play? How does he use
his status as a man to assert power over her? How does he use
his status as a white American?
12. Discuss the scene in which Chester and JumpJim are pulled
over by the police outside Clarksdale. How does Chester’s ease
in disparaging African Americans affect his road trip partner?
How does this relate to the larger cultural conversation
currently happening in the United States about race, privilege,
and police relations?
13. What did you make of Charlie Shaw appearing in the flesh to
Seth? What is the purpose of him revealing himself now? Do
you attribute this to Seth’s instability? Why or why not?
14. Leonie’s murder—and the police interrogation that comes along
with it—is a shocking turn of events. Discuss the scene in which
the questioning of the suspect occurs. How does Kunzru play
with reality and narrative structure in this scene?
15. White Tears is a deeply complex examination of race, identity,
and history in America that is as technically intricate as it is
topical. What was the most challenging aspect of this reading
experience for you? The most thought-provoking scene? What
do you think of classifying White Tears as a “ghost story”?
16. Robert Johnson is considered to be the king of the Delta blues
and has become a mythic figure—most notably for the story that
he sold his soul to the devil for musical prowess. In recent years,
interest in Johnson has soared. How would you account for
that? How does Johnson’s story and mythic status illustrate the
ideas presented in White Tears?
White Tears - Hari KunzruHari Kunzru / text
P. 292
Suggested Reading
Gods Without Men by Hari Kunzru
The Nix by Nathan Hill
The Underground Railroad by Colson Whitehead
“The Ballad of Geeshie and Elvie” by John Jeremiah Sullivan for The
New York Times Magazine
White Tears - Hari KunzruHari Kunzru / text
P. 293
Slipping Into Darkness
When I write fiction, it’s important for me to go to the places I’m
writing about. There’s something about the feel of a place, the smell,
the textures, that a novelist can’t pick up any other way. Invariably I
find that when I’m travelling, things happen to me that find their way
into my books.
To write White Tears I made pilgrimages to various places in the
Delta associated with the blues, such as this, one of several graves
reputed to be the last resting place of Robert Johnson. It was a
lonely place, a burying ground outside a rural Baptist church. As I got
there, a huge thunderstorm broke out…
All over the south, and particularly in the Mississippi Delta, are
places with historic echoes in blues lyrics. Here’s where ‘the
White Tears - Hari KunzruHari Kunzru / text
P. 294
southern crosses the yellow dog’, a railroad junction where itinerant
musicians would hop on and off trains as they made their way from
camp to town to plantation.
The Southern cross the Dog at Moorhead, an’ she keeps on through If my babe
gone to Georgia, believe I’m goin’ to Georgia too
This is the Dockery plantation in Bolivar County MS, where Charley
Patton would play for the workers as they collected their pay. The
particular blues style of this small area has been incredibly influential
– both on musicians who followed Patton like Robert Johnson and
Muddy Waters, and on modern rock music, in which you can still
hear rhythms, lyrics and guitar styles that originated here.
White Tears - Hari KunzruHari Kunzru / text
P. 295
Believe it or not, the next photo is Avalon. Not where Excalibur was
forged, but where Mississippi John Hurt spent his life as a share
cropper.
White Tears - Hari KunzruHari Kunzru / text
P. 296
Avalon, my hometown, always on my mind
Avalon, my hometown, always on my mind
Pretty mamas there in Avalon, want me all the time
I nosed around in towns like Clarksdale and Greenville, places that
boomed when cotton was king, but are now sad ghosts of their
former selves.
White Tears - Hari KunzruHari Kunzru / text
P. 297
I spent the night in a shotgun shack, so-called because if you pull the
trigger when you’re standing at the front door, the pellets will blow
right through, hitting everyone inside.
White Tears - Hari KunzruHari Kunzru / text
P. 298
I drank a few beers at the Blue Front café in Bentonia MS, talking to
the owner, Jimmy Holmes, about what it’s like operating one of the
last of the old juke joints.
White Tears - Hari KunzruHari Kunzru / text
P. 299
I stumbled on the ruins of Bryant’s Grocery, one of the grimmest
sites in the south. This is where fourteen year old Emmett Till
‘recklessly eyeballed’ the white owner’s wife. The owner and a friend
kidnapped the boy, tortured in the back of the store and then
murdered him, throwing the body into the river, weighted down with
an engine block. The incident galvanized the civil rights movement.
An all-white jury acquitted both defendants after a 67-minute
deliberation; one juror said, “If we hadn’t stopped to drink pop, it
wouldn’t have taken that long.”
White Tears - Hari KunzruHari Kunzru / text
P. 300
That old time religion has a dark side too…
White Tears - Hari KunzruHari Kunzru / text
P. 301
The world of 78 recording collecting is populated by eccentrics and
misfits. It’s very closed to outsiders. One of my best guides has been
Christopher King, a collector who lives in rural Virginia. An evening
drinking bourbon in his listening room is a pleasure and a privilege.
Chris finds something occult and mystical in the music. Elsewhere,
such as the tomb of ‘voodoo queen’ Marie Laveau in Saint Louis
cemetery, New Orleans, the occult is alive in a more literal sense.
White Tears - Hari KunzruHari Kunzru / text
P. 302
As I traveled, I wrote notes and took photographs. I ate well, if not
always healthily…
White Tears - Hari KunzruHari Kunzru / text
P. 303
I took inspiration from the working habits of a great southern writer at
the Faulkner house in Oxford MS.
White Tears - Hari KunzruHari Kunzru / text
P. 304
I climbed into abandoned buildings in Farish Street, Jackson, once
known as the ‘black Mecca’, now almost completely forgotten. I like
to think this was where Mr. Spier’s record store was once located.
Spier, a white man, discovered many of the great blues musicians,
and acted as a scout for record companies in the twenties and
thirties.
White Tears - Hari KunzruHari Kunzru / text
P. 305
I looked up at Corinthian columns, all that remains of Windsor House, one of the
last great antebellum plantation mansions, near Port Gibson.
White Tears - Hari KunzruHari Kunzru / text
P. 306
Even back in New York, where I live, the meaning of ‘the south’ is
fraught and contested.
White Tears - Hari KunzruHari Kunzru / text
P. 307
White Tears is about records
White Tears - Hari KunzruHari Kunzru / text
P. 308
But records are only the part of history that was captured, the part
that remains. For the rest, you have to go south and listen. White
Tears is a record of what I heard. I hope you enjoy it.
- Hari Kunzru August 2016
White Tears - Hari KunzruHari Kunzru / text
P. 309
What’s next on
your reading list?
Discover your next
great read!
Get personalized book picks and up-to-date news about this author.
Sign up now.